Selected quad for the lemma: soul_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
soul_n body_n end_n world_n 4,493 5 4.5735 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A42287 An apology for M. Antonia Bourignon in four parts ... : to which are added two letters from different hands, containing remarks on the preface to The snake in the grass and Bourignianism detected : as also some of her own letters, whereby her true Christian spirit and sentiments are farther justified and vindicated, particularly as to the doctrine of the merits and satisfaction of Jesus Christ. Garden, George, 1649-1733.; Bourignon, Antoinette, 1616-1680.; De Heyde, Dr. 1699 (1699) Wing G218; ESTC R18554 402,086 456

There are 46 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

that_o the_o latter_a christian_n shall_v live_v in_o great_a perfection_n than_o those_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v 125._o that_o he_o will_v send_v his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o lay_v before_o we_o those_o mean_n of_o salvation_n which_o jesus_n christ_n teach_v we_o while_n on_o earth_n that_o we_o may_v clear_o see_v how_o far_o we_o be_v estrange_v from_o they_o and_o to_o give_v we_o the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o we_o may_v see_v the_o way_n to_o return_v and_o to_o take_v up_o again_o the_o same_o gospel-mean_n and_o recover_v the_o dependence_n of_o our_o will_n on_o god_n without_o which_o none_o can_v be_v save_v and_o god_n will_v give_v the_o full_a understanding_n of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v deliver_v in_o his_o name_n from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n both_o by_o the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o other_o saint_n his_o disciple_n 2._o earth_n the_o original_a design_n of_o god_n in_o the_o create_v of_o man_n be_v to_o take_v his_o delight_n with_o he_o for_o which_o end_n he_o not_o only_o make_v man_n after_o his_o own_o likeness_n but_o he_o also_o become_v man_n that_o he_o may_v live_v with_o he_o in_o perfect_a resemblance_n to_o all_o eternity_n and_o this_o be_v now_o suspend_v unto_o man_n because_o of_o his_o sin_n until_o that_o he_o have_v accomplish_v his_o penitence_n to_o which_o he_o be_v subject_v by_o sin_n yet_o since_o god_n do_v not_o change_n 158._o nor_o will_v ever_o alter_v his_o design_n this_o time_n of_o penitence_n be_v finish_v man_n will_v enter_v again_o into_o communion_n with_o god_n as_o if_o he_o have_v never_o offend_v he_o he_o will_v speak_v to_o god_n face_n to_o face_n by_o his_o humanity_n which_o will_v be_v render_v immortal_a as_o well_o as_o be_v that_o of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o they_o may_v delight_v themselves_o perfect_o together_o upon_o earth_n which_o will_v then_o be_v render_v paradise_n by_o the_o lovely_a presence_n of_o god_n who_o for_o this_o end_n become_v man_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n will_v come_v in_o glory_n upon_o earth_n to_o live_v and_o reign_v for_o ever_o with_o man_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o the_o design_n that_o god_n have_v over_o man_n and_o the_o alliance_n he_o have_v often_o promise_v to_o make_v with_o man._n 3._o integrity_n all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v eternal_a and_o nothing_o that_o he_o have_v make_v shall_v ever_o perish_v and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o world_n at_o the_o come_v of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o glory_n all_o thing_n shall_v be_v renew_v and_o restore_v into_o that_o primitive_a integrity_n in_o which_o they_o be_v at_o first_o create_v all_o the_o evil_a that_o be_v in_o the_o creature_n the_o fruit_n of_o man_n sin_n shall_v be_v whole_o take_v away_o all_o nature_n shall_v then_o put_v off_o the_o corruption_n 〈…〉_z darkness_n and_o all_o the_o disorder_n with_o which_o it_o have_v be_v taint_v since_o adam_n sin_n all_o shall_v become_v bright_a 1st_a glorious_a and_o luminous_a all_o corruption_n shall_v be_v remove_v from_o the_o body_n of_o man_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v re-establish_v in_o that_o glorious_a perfect_a state_n in_o which_o it_o be_v at_o first_o create_v and_o the_o soul_n become_v perfect_o pure_a shall_v take_v its_o delight_n with_o god_n and_o the_o body_n with_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o all_o the_o other_o creature_n for_o god_n create_v they_o for_o those_o end_n 148._o and_o for_o no_o other_o thing_n that_o man_n may_v have_v his_o full_a perfect_a contentment_n of_o body_n and_o mind_n in_o that_o life_n eternal_a wherein_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v reign_v always_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n with_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o the_o bless_a who_o shall_v be_v unite_v in_o spirit_n unto_o god_n and_o in_o body_n unto_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 4._o all_o after_o the_o judgement_n when_o god_n shall_v take_v all_o malignity_n from_o the_o earth_n and_o from_o all_o the_o creature_n the_o venom_n from_o serpent_n scorpion_n and_o other_o poisonous_a beast_n malady_n and_o infirmity_n from_o the_o body_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n and_o weakness_n from_o spirit_n 153._o all_o this_o shall_v be_v reduce_v into_o some_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n all_o in_o a_o mass_n that_o these_o malignity_n may_v act_v together_o upon_o the_o body_n of_o the_o damn_a and_o that_o the_o work_n of_o their_o hand_n be_v render_v unto_o they_o for_o god_n never_o make_v any_o of_o all_o these_o evil_n he_o create_v all_o thing_n good_n man_n only_a by_o their_o wickedness_n have_v give_v malignity_n unto_o all_o create_a thing_n and_o therefore_o it_o ought_v to_o appertain_v to_o they_o and_o to_o be_v render_v to_o they_o by_o the_o right_n of_o justice_n which_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v at_o the_o judgement_n when_o the_o body_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v rise_v also_o that_o none_o of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n may_v perish_v and_o shall_v be_v send_v into_o that_o miserable_a corner_n with_o all_o the_o evil_n which_o shall_v be_v remove_v from_o the_o bless_a and_o from_o the_o earth_n from_o plant_n beast_n and_o all_o the_o element_n that_o all_o these_o thing_n may_v serve_v they_o only_o for_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n without_o be_v able_a to_o do_v any_o more_o evil_a as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n of_o their_o creation_n and_o all_o their_o malignity_n which_o they_o have_v contract_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v render_v unto_o their_o author_n 5._o 169._o god_n have_v at_o the_o first_o creation_n endue_v all_o live_a creature_n with_o a_o power_n of_o produce_v their_o like_a and_o man_n in_o his_o perfect_a state_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o same_o power_n of_o produce_v his_o like_a without_o the_o help_n of_o another_o he_o shall_v be_v re-establish_v into_o the_o same_o state_n again_o so_o that_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n there_o will_v be_v eternal_a propagation_n but_o altogether_o holy_a altogether_o pure_a and_o deify_v without_o concupiscible_a appetite_n but_o by_o pure_a act_n of_o love_n to_o god_n which_o will_v extend_v itself_o to_o the_o production_n of_o new_a creature_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o creator_n there_o there_o be_v not_o male_a and_o female_a they_o neither_o marry_v nor_o be_v give_v in_o marriage_n but_o be_v as_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n xxxviii_o damnable_a this_o as_o a_o sum_n of_o her_o accessary_a sentiment_n and_o they_o who_o shall_v consider_v they_o without_o prejudice_n will_v hardly_o think_v that_o for_o they_o she_o deserve_v to_o be_v treat_v either_o as_o a_o heritick_n or_o as_o a_o mad_a whimsical_a woman_n it_o have_v be_v already_o say_v that_o she_o do_v not_o propose_v they_o as_o article_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o that_o according_a to_o st._n augustine_n these_o only_o be_v damnable_a doctrine_n which_o tend_v to_o destroy_v charity_n the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n which_o it_o be_v evident_a those_o sentiment_n do_v not_o and_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o make_v appear_v that_o many_o other_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n do_v which_o pass_v among_o many_o for_o very_a christian_n thirty-nine_o christianity_n beside_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o these_o sentiment_n tend_v to_o clear_v and_o confirm_v all_o the_o truth_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n and_o to_o endear_v they_o to_o we_o they_o show_v we_o the_o great_a design_n of_o god_n love_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n the_o excellent_a state_n in_o which_o he_o make_v he_o and_o the_o happiness_n to_o which_o he_o design_v he_o they_o make_v appear_v evident_o that_o all_o our_o evil_n be_v from_o ourselves_o and_o all_o our_o good_a from_o god_n they_o show_v we_o the_o ground_n and_o reason_n why_o man_n redemption_n be_v set_v about_o and_o not_o the_o fall_v angel_n why_o jesus_n christ_n take_v such_o interest_n in_o man_n become_v intercessor_n and_o surety_n for_o he_o and_o why_o his_o mediation_n be_v accept_v by_o god_n his_o father_n and_o why_o after_o other_o mean_v essay_v he_o at_o last_o clothe_v himself_o with_o man_n mortality_n why_o the_o follow_v of_o his_o counsel_n and_o example_n be_v indispensible_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n they_o represent_v to_o we_o the_o horrid_a corruption_n that_o man_n be_v fall_v into_o by_o sin_n both_o as_o to_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o all_o the_o creation_n by_o he_o and_o how_o mad_a we_o be_v to_o gratify_v our_o corrupt_a inclination_n and_o to_o love_v this_o present_a world_n they_o direct_v we_o to_o a_o right_a use_n of_o the_o rod_n and_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o awaken_v we_o to_o a_o sense_n of_o our_o present_a state_n wherein_o all_o the_o world_n lie_v in_o wickedness_n they_o give_v we_o a_o prospect_n
it_o i_o take_v cant_n for_o a_o multitude_n of_o word_n without_o any_o true_a and_o divine_a sense_n and_o not_o flow_v from_o a_o inward_a life_n and_o spirit_n and_o of_o this_o there_o be_v but_o too_o much_o in_o the_o world_n but_o the_o write_n of_o a._n b._n be_v of_o another_o temper_n and_o no_o body_n will_v nauseate_n they_o upon_o this_o head_n but_o they_o who_o have_v a_o secret_a disgust_n for_o the_o holy_a scripture_n god_n way_n be_v not_o as_o our_o way_n when_o we_o write_v we_o seek_v ourselves_o we_o strive_v to_o discover_v our_o reason_n and_o our_o learning_n and_o study_v what_o may_v please_v the_o curiosity_n the_o fancy_n and_o the_o niceness_n of_o other_o the_o holy_a write_n be_v most_o unlike_a to_o we_o both_o as_o to_o matter_n and_o manner_n and_o method_n and_o style_n they_o be_v not_o write_v to_o please_v the_o learned_a the_o orator_n the_o philosopher_n the_o critic_n the_o curious_a but_o to_o bring_v down_o every_o lofty_a imagination_n and_o to_o mortify_v our_o self-conceit_n to_o comfort_v the_o humble_a and_o the_o afflict_a to_o give_v light_n and_o knowledge_n to_o the_o poor_a and_o simple_a and_o to_o send_v the_o rich_a away_o empty_a they_o repeat_v again_o and_o again_o the_o great_a and_o necessary_a thing_n of_o god_n law_n to_o mortify_v our_o niceness_n and_o curiosity_n and_o to_o beat_v they_o in_o upon_o we_o by_o all_o mean_n while_o we_o think_v it_o enough_o to_o know_v these_o thing_n though_o we_o be_v not_o so_o happy_a as_o to_o do_v they_o now_o write_n that_o partake_v so_o much_o of_o this_o spirit_n will_v not_o be_v despise_v on_o this_o head_n by_o any_o sincere_a christian_a xxvii_o paradise_n some_o endeavour_n to_o render_v her_o sentiment_n ridiculous_a concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o bless_a in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o they_o say_v she_o establish_v a_o mahometan_a paradise_n eat_v and_o drink_v and_o generation_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n make_v the_o earth_n to_o become_v that_o heaven_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o place_n of_o all_o sensitive_a delight_n unto_o the_o pure_a all_o thing_n be_v pure_a but_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v defile_v and_o unbelieving_a be_v nothing_o pure_a but_o even_o their_o mind_n and_o conscience_n be_v defile_v i_o will_v glad_o ask_v such_o if_o adam_n have_v continue_v always_o in_o the_o state_n of_o innocence_n perfect_o pure_a and_o holy_a whether_o they_o will_v have_v call_v his_o state_n a_o mahometan_a paradise_n and_o a_o sensual_a life_n if_o there_o be_v no_o concupiscence_n in_o man_n nature_n but_o a_o most_o ardent_a pure_a and_o habitual_a love_n of_o god_n the_o beauty_n and_o delight_n of_o all_o the_o creature_n will_v serve_v to_o inflame_v the_o soul_n still_o the_o more_o with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n there_o need_v no_o more_o but_o to_o understand_v her_o sentiment_n to_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o impudent_a falsehood_n of_o their_o reproach_n she_o say_v then_o that_o the_o earth_n and_o all_o this_o visible_a world_n be_v whole_o renew_v and_o restore_v to_o that_o glorious_a state_n in_o which_o it_o be_v at_o first_o form_v of_o which_o in_o the_o first_o part_n shall_v be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n with_o man_n for_o ever_o where_o jesus_n christ_n god-man_n will_v reign_v with_o the_o bless_a both_o as_o to_o his_o divinity_n and_o humanity_n that_o heaven_n as_o to_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o we_o be_v in_o heaven_n when_o we_o be_v in_o god_n and_o god_n be_v in_o heaven_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o saint_n as_o augustin_n interpret_v our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o the_o heaven_n but_o as_o god_n have_v give_v we_o both_o a_o body_n and_o soul_n he_o have_v give_v we_o also_o a_o paradise_n of_o both_o the_o soul_n can_v have_v its_o complete_a paradise_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n but_o the_o body_n must_v have_v a_o material_a and_o bodily_a one_o like_o itself_o for_o this_o end_n the_o earth_n and_o all_o this_o visible_a world_n and_o all_o that_o therein_o be_v be_v create_v and_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n god_n will_v have_v become_v man_n though_o man_n have_v never_o sin_v that_o he_o may_v live_v with_o he_o both_o bodily_a and_o spiritual_o and_o to_o make_v his_o happiness_n complete_a and_o therefore_o he_o be_v unchangeable_a in_o his_o infinite_o wise_a and_o good_a design_n he_o will_v certain_o make_v not_o a_o imaginary_a but_o a_o real_a divine_a and_o corporeal_a reparation_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o last_v for_o ever_o for_o his_o recompense_n be_v eternal_a and_o will_v purge_v away_o from_o all_o the_o creature_n the_o malignity_n and_o corruption_n that_o sin_n have_v bring_v upon_o they_o and_o in_o this_o state_n every_o individual_a saint_n be_v restore_v in_o body_n and_o soul_n to_o the_o state_n in_o which_o adam_n be_v in_o his_o great_a purity_n before_o the_o woman_n be_v form_v out_o of_o he_o shall_v produce_v his_o like_a of_o himself_o alone_o through_o all_o eternity_n from_o a_o principle_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o by_o a_o ardent_a desire_n that_o there_o may_v be_v still_o more_o creature_n to_o love_n and_o praise_v the_o divine_a majesty_n this_o than_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o corrupt_a lustful_a and_o shameful_a propagation_n like_v to_o that_o of_o this_o corrupt_a world_n but_o altogether_o pure_a holy_a and_o glorious_a as_o we_o see_v in_o a_o manner_n a_o earthly_a figure_n of_o it_o still_o in_o all_o the_o plant_n and_o tree_n 30._o in_o the_o resurrection_n they_o neither_o marry_v nor_o be_v give_v in_o marriage_n but_o be_v as_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n now_o what_o be_v there_o in_o all_o this_o unworthy_a of_o god_n or_o unsuitable_a to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o bless_a or_o contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n it_o be_v certain_a none_o of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n shall_v perish_v but_o all_o shall_v be_v restore_v to_o their_o primitive_a perfection_n the_o scripture_n tell_v we_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n who_o habitation_n will_v the_o earth_n have_v be_v if_o man_n have_v never_o sin_v and_o if_o the_o earth_n have_v never_o be_v accurse_v and_o who_o habitation_n shall_v it_o be_v when_o it_o be_v renew_v and_o make_v a_o new_a earth_n when_o man_n fancy_v all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n to_o be_v shut_v up_o as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o round_a sphere_n and_o the_o earth_n to_o be_v its_o centre_n and_o the_o planetary_a and_o starry_a heaven_n so_o many_o firm_a and_o solid_a orb_n move_v round_o about_o it_o and_o the_o empyreal_a heaven_n above_o all_o this_o sentiment_n about_o the_o earth_n may_v have_v be_v think_v absurd_a but_o in_o the_o age_n we_o live_v in_o wherein_o be_v make_v know_v the_o vastness_n of_o the_o universe_n and_o that_o all_o the_o fix_a star_n be_v probable_o sun_n and_o centre_n of_o different_a system_n of_o the_o whole_a and_o all_o the_o other_o planet_n as_o well_o as_o our_o earth_n among_o which_o it_o move_v replenish_v no_o doubt_n with_o variety_n of_o live_v and_o intelligent_a being_n we_o have_v reason_n to_o admire_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n in_o give_v discovery_n to_o a_o simple_a unlearned_a woman_n of_o the_o state_n and_o habitation_n of_o the_o bless_a suitable_a to_o what_o be_v now_o know_v of_o the_o frame_n of_o the_o universe_n which_o be_v also_o full_o confirm_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o be_v show_v in_o the_o first_o part_n and_o do_v so_o clear_o demonstrate_v the_o unchangeable_a wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n who_o have_v create_v man_n in_o a_o pure_a and_o happy_a state_n and_o the_o delight_n and_o beauty_n of_o this_o world_n for_o his_o accessary_a felicity_n and_o the_o devil_n by_o his_o craft_n and_o subtilty_n have_v pervert_v both_o and_o make_v this_o earth_n for_o many_o age_n nothing_o but_o scene_n of_o wickedness_n and_o misery_n yet_o god_n by_o his_o infinite_o wise_a conduct_n and_o providence_n bring_v about_o at_o last_o the_o perfect_a renovation_n of_o man_n and_o of_o his_o habitation_n the_o earth_n and_o of_o all_o the_o creature_n and_o make_v it_o a_o eternal_a paradise_n of_o unspotted_a purity_n and_o bliss_n whereas_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n it_o be_v most_o unaccountable_a how_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o goodness_n who_o change_v not_o after_o he_o have_v form_v man_n and_o this_o world_n in_o so_o excellent_a a_o state_n and_o both_o be_v corrupt_v by_o the_o devil_n shall_v continue_v the_o earth_n for_o so_o many_o age_n to_o be_v the_o theatre_n of_o their_o wickedness_n and_o then_o entire_o destroy_v it_o may_v it_o not_o then_o be_v say_v as_o she_o express_v it_o that_o god_n
seem_v therefore_o now_o that_o all_o be_v not_o good_a as_o he_o have_v make_v it_o that_o man_n begin_v to_o abuse_v the_o free_a will_n that_o god_n have_v give_v he_o to_o be_v less_o ardent_a in_o his_o love_n and_o dependence_n upon_o god_n and_o to_o lean_v towards_o the_o creature_n and_o therefore_o to_o prevent_v his_o total_a fall_n he_o make_v a_o helpmeet_a for_o he_o give_v he_o a_o companion_n endue_v with_o a_o immortal_a soul_n and_o the_o live_a image_n of_o god_n as_o himself_o that_o in_o love_v this_o live_a image_n of_o the_o divinity_n as_o himself_o his_o affection_n may_v be_v raise_v and_o strengthen_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n 4._o adam_n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v immediate_o from_o adam_n and_o that_o god_n in_o he_o do_v assume_v the_o human_a nature_n before_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n be_v insinuate_v by_o those_o instance_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o he_o be_v call_v peculiar_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 33._o there_o be_v none_o other_o so_o but_o he_o the_o second_o adam_n that_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o first-born_a of_o every_o creature_n none_o of_o the_o creature_n have_v produce_v any_o of_o their_o kind_n before_o adam_n that_o the_o lord_n converse_v familiar_o with_o adam_n and_o speak_v with_o he_o face_n to_o face_n and_o he_o hear_v the_o lord_n walk_v in_o the_o garden_n and_o hide_v himself_o thus_o it_o be_v god_n in_o the_o human_a nature_n jesus_n christ_n that_o speak_v to_o adam_n to_o noah_n to_o abraham_n to_o jacob_n to_o moses_n to_o the_o patriarch_n and_o the_o prophet_n the_o interpretation_n which_o by_o latter_a writer_n be_v give_v of_o those_o apparition_n be_v a_o evident_a strain_v of_o the_o text_n as_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o create_a angel_n a_o simple_a creature_n who_o say_v 6._o i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o father_n the_o god_n of_o abraham_n and_o moses_n hide_v his_o face_n for_o he_o be_v afraid_a to_o look_v upon_o god_n it_o 21_o be_v he_o who_o in_o person_n do_v lead_v the_o israelite_n by_o day_n in_o a_o pillar_n of_o a_o cloud_n and_o by_o night_n in_o a_o pillar_n of_o fire_n 11._o out_o of_o which_o he_o speak_v to_o moses_n face_n to_o face_n as_o a_o friend_n speak_v to_o his_o friend_n thus_o 3._o after_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o golden_a calf_n he_o threaten_v not_o to_o go_v up_o any_o long_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o but_o to_o send_v a_o angel_n before_o they_o and_o when_o moses_n desire_v to_o see_v his_o glory_n 23._o he_o be_v cover_v with_o the_o lord_n hand_n while_o he_o pass_v by_o and_o permit_v only_o to_o see_v his_o back_n part_n because_o he_o can_v not_o see_v his_o face_n and_o live_v the_o weakness_n of_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n not_o be_v able_a to_o behold_v that_o glory_n without_o be_v dissolve_v and_o yet_o this_o divine_a body_n though_o cover_v with_o a_o cloud_n make_v such_o impression_n by_o the_o ray_n of_o its_o glory_n on_o the_o body_n of_o moses_n 35._o as_o that_o after_o forty_o day_n conversation_n his_o countenance_n do_v shine_v and_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v so_o sensible_a that_o all_o this_o can_v not_o be_v say_v of_o a_o angel_n that_o many_o of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o opinion_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v assume_v a_o human_a body_n before_o he_o be_v incarnate_a and_o therein_o appear_v to_o adam_n and_o the_o patriarch_n so_o justin_n martyr_n tertullian_n irenaeus_n etc._n etc._n a_o very_a pious_a and_o learned_a divine_a of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v of_o late_o make_v appear_v 258._o that_o jesus_n christ_n immediate_o after_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n become_v the_o mediatior_fw-la and_o surety_n of_o a_o new_a covenant_n and_o so_o under_o the_o most_o high_a god_n and_o father_n do_v immediate_o rule_v and_o govern_v his_o church_n and_o people_n and_o that_o therefore_o 1._o there_o be_v a_o certain_a extraordinary_a angel_n who_o frequent_o appear_v and_o speak_v to_o the_o jewish_a patriarch_n who_o be_v sometime_o call_v jehovah_n who_o ordinary_o assume_v to_o himself_o divine_a appellation_n and_o to_o who_o the_o holy_a man_n render_v divine_a honour_n vow_n and_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o he_o appear_v to_o they_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man._n 2._o that_o he_o be_v a_o divine_a person_n and_o no_o create_v be_v 3._o that_o he_o be_v that_o divine_a person_n that_o descend_v upon_o mount_n sinai_n and_o from_o thence_o remove_v into_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o thence_o into_o the_o temple_n 4._o that_o he_o be_v not_o god_n the_o father_n 5._o that_o he_o be_v god_n the_o son_n who_o appear_v to_o the_o patriarch_n joh._n 8._o 56_o 58._o bring_v israel_n out_o of_o egypt_n and_o descend_v on_o mount_n sinai_n heb._n 12._o 16._o eph._n 4._o 8._o psal_n 68_o lead_v they_o through_o the_o wilderness_n into_o canaan_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 9_o dwell_v in_o the_o jewish_a tabernacle_n and_o temple_n joh._n 12._o 41._o compare_v with_o be_v 6._o 1._o and_o be_v that_o jehovah_n and_o divine_a lord_n and_o king_n who_o under_o the_o most_o high_a father_n preside_v over_o the_o jewish_a church_n eph._n 5_o 14._o with_o be_v 60._o 1._o be_v 41._o 4._o and_o 48._o 12._o with_o rev._n 1._o 2_o 17._o and_o 2._o 8._o and_o after_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n he_o still_o retain_v his_o right_n and_o title_n of_o king_n of_o israel_n matth._n 2._o 2._o joh._n 1._o 49._o and_o 12._o 13._o zech._n 9_o 9_o 14_o 15._o joh._n 18._o 33_o 34_o 35_o 36_o 37._o now_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o immediate_o after_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n jesus_n christ_n become_v a_o mediator_n and_o surety_n for_o he_o that_o he_o take_v the_o immediate_a care_n of_o his_o people_n and_o often_o appear_v to_o they_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n be_v it_o not_o as_o agreeable_a with_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o say_v he_o be_v true_o so_o than_o to_o affirm_v that_o he_o take_v only_o the_o appearance_n of_o a_o man_n till_o he_o clothe_v himself_o with_o our_o frailty_n and_o mortality_n beside_o this_o be_v a_o wonderful_a instance_n of_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n that_o so_o many_o of_o the_o angel_n have_v fall_v from_o their_o first_o state_n and_o so_o all_o intercourse_n between_o god_n and_o they_o break_v off_o to_o prevent_v the_o fall_n of_o man_n or_o if_o he_o shall_v fall_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o way_n for_o his_o recovery_n and_o that_o there_o may_v be_v one_o for_o who_o sake_n and_o mediation_n he_o may_v pardon_v man_n and_o confer_v new_a grace_n on_o he_o that_o therefore_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n shall_v unite_v himself_o to_o man_n nature_n and_o become_v man_n while_o man_n be_v yet_o in_o his_o integrity_n and_o innocency_n since_o afterward_o the_o divinity_n will_v not_o have_v unite_v itself_o to_o sinful_a man_n and_o so_o all_o intercourse_n between_o god_n and_o man_n shall_v have_v be_v break_v off_o as_o it_o be_v between_o he_o and_o the_o fall_v angel_n 5._o man._n that_o sin_n do_v strange_o deform_v the_o body_n of_o man_n and_o that_o it_o become_v quite_o another_o thing_n than_o it_o be_v before_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o man_n after_o his_o sin_n be_v asham●d_v of_o himself_o see_v his_o nakedness_n and_o be_v ashamed_a of_o it_o and_o seek_v something_o wherewith_o to_o cover_v it_o whereas_o there_o be_v no_o such_o shame_n before_o no_o more_o than_o the_o sun_n can_v be_v ashamed_a that_o his_o light_n and_o glory_n be_v not_o cover_v with_o cloud_n and_o darkness_n 6._o creature_n that_o sin_n have_v also_o deform_v the_o creation_n which_o be_v to_o be_v restore_v to_o its_o primitive_a state_n be_v express_o point_v out_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o be_v tell_v 20._o that_o the_o creature_n be_v make_v subject_a to_o vanity_n 22._o and_o that_o the_o whole_a creation_n groan_v and_o travel_v in_o pain_n together_o until_o now_o 21._o and_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n into_o the_o glorious_a liberty_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n 7._o body_n that_o all_o man_n be_v the_o natural_a offspring_n of_o adam_n as_o to_o their_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o to_o their_o body_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o most_o just_a and_o true_a sentiment_n we_o see_v in_o this_o visible_a world_n god_n have_v endue_v all_o live_a creature_n with_o a_o power_n to_o produce_v their_o like_a from_o the_o mean_a plant_n to_o the_o most_o perfect_a animal_n all_o kind_n of_o bird_n beast_n and_o fish_n produce_v their_o offspring_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o body_n life_n and_o spirit_n with_o themselves_o endue_v with_o the_o same_o power_n of_o produce_v their_o like_a which_o life_n and_o spirit_n
even_o the_o learned_a as_o well_o as_o the_o vulgar_a begin_v again_o to_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v somewhat_o else_o than_o mere_a mechanism_n this_o production_n all_o the_o art_n of_o the_o world_n can_v imitate_v but_o it_o be_v derive_v down_o from_o the_o first_o of_o every_o kind_a to_o the_o respective_a series_n of_o individual_n of_o that_o kind_a through_o all_o generation_n that_o all_o man_n do_v thus_o derive_v their_o offspring_n from_o adam_n as_o to_o their_o body_n no_o body_n will_v deny_v but_o the_o general_a opinion_n of_o the_o learned_a have_v be_v that_o our_o soul_n be_v immediate_o create_v or_o infuse_v by_o god_n into_o our_o body_n and_o that_o we_o do_v not_o derive_v they_o from_o our_o parent_n and_o so_o from_o adam_n but_o as_o god_n have_v endue_v man_n with_o a_o power_n of_o produce_v the_o body_n of_o his_o offspring_n so_o also_o it_o seem_v evident_a that_o he_o have_v endue_v man_n soul_n unite_v to_o his_o body_n with_o a_o power_n of_o produce_v soul_n unite_v to_o body_n which_o receive_v also_o from_o their_o constituent_n the_o same_o power_n of_o produce_v other_o soul_n unite_v to_o body_n and_o that_o altogether_o like_o themselves_o there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o the_o blessing_n of_o multiply_v give_v to_o man_n be_v as_o unlimited_a as_o that_o to_o the_o other_o creature_n and_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o the_o child_n in_o the_o parent_n loin_n and_o by_o this_o we_o easy_o conceive_v how_o the_o corruption_n of_o man_n nature_n be_v communicate_v to_o his_o posterity_n without_o any_o blemish_n in_o the_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n of_o god_n for_o he_o have_v create_v man_n holy_a and_o righteous_a with_o a_o power_n to_o produce_v his_o like_a have_v he_o continue_v so_o the_o soul_n which_o proceed_v from_o he_o have_v be_v so_o too_o but_o he_o be_v corrupt_v in_o his_o nature_n he_o can_v derive_v no_o other_o to_o his_o posterity_n for_o propagation_n be_v redouble_v of_o the_o same_o be_v and_o of_o the_o same_o state_n in_o which_o it_o be_v but_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n if_o soul_n be_v not_o derive_v from_o the_o parent_n but_o immediate_o create_v by_o god_n child_n may_v be_v less_o say_v to_o be_v the_o offspring_n of_o their_o parent_n than_o the_o young_a of_o the_o other_o live_v creature_n be_v from_o they_o so_o that_o they_o all_o do_v more_o perfect_o produce_v their_o kind_n than_a do_v man._n but_o above_o all_o this_o will_v never_o satisfy_v as_o to_o the_o other_o great_a truth_n that_o all_o soul_n be_v now_o impure_a and_o corrupt_a from_o their_o original_a 3._o and_o child_n of_o wrath_n by_o nature_n as_o the_o scripture_n say_v it_o be_v blasphemous_a to_o say_v that_o god_n create_v soul_n impure_a ignorant_a and_o corrupt_a and_o it_o be_v no_o less_o evil_a to_o think_v that_o god_n create_v they_o pure_a and_o holy_a do_v immediate_o put_v they_o into_o body_n where_o they_o no_o soon_o be_v but_o immediate_o they_o be_v thereby_o repute_v so_o corrupt_a and_o guilty_a as_o to_o merit_v a_o eternal_a separation_n from_o god_n the_o devout_a and_o profound_a s._n augustine_n be_v so_o sensible_a of_o the_o difficulty_n in_o this_o matter_n animarum_fw-la that_o he_o be_v undetermined_a what_o side_n to_o take_v and_o profess_v that_o he_o have_v see_v nothing_o that_o clear_v they_o and_o he_o be_v for_o bear_v with_o one_o another_o as_o to_o a_o difference_n of_o sentiment_n in_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v absurd_a to_o conclude_v this_o sentiment_n to_o be_v false_a because_o we_o can_v conceive_v how_o soul_n shall_v propagate_v soul_n without_o communicate_v of_o themselves_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n if_o the_o last_o they_o be_v divisible_a and_o not_o spiritual_a if_o the_o first_o they_o shall_v cease_v to_o animate_v their_o former_a body_n this_o be_v to_o reason_n about_o soul_n from_o the_o idea_n we_o have_v of_o body_n do_v not_o we_o experience_v ten_o thousand_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n though_o we_o can_v conceive_v how_o they_o be_v we_o see_v the_o soul_n produce_v thought_n and_o one_o thought_n produce_v another_o and_o this_o in_o infinitum_fw-la now_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o god_n to_o make_v that_o in_o certain_a circumstance_n the_o divine_a productive_a virtue_n of_o the_o soul_n shall_v beget_v a_o thought_n which_o have_v in_o it_o a_o principle_n of_o activity_n as_o itself_o have_v and_o that_o this_o principle_n after_o its_o production_n shall_v not_o depend_v any_o long_o on_o the_o produce_v soul_n but_o subsist_v by_o itself_o 8._o christiani_n it_o have_v be_v judge_v the_o great_a uncharitableness_n for_o she_o to_o declare_v to_o the_o world_n that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n whereas_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a act_n of_o charity_n if_o a_o number_n of_o person_n be_v desperate_o sick_a and_o their_o distemper_n have_v so_o craze_v the_o most_o of_o they_o that_o they_o be_v not_o sensible_a of_o their_o own_o sickness_n and_o danger_n though_o they_o perceive_v sufficient_o the_o illness_n of_o their_o neighbour_n will_v it_o be_v uncharitableness_n to_o awaken_v they_o and_o tell_v they_o of_o their_o danger_n and_o direct_v they_o to_o the_o true_a remedy_n even_o though_o some_o of_o they_o be_v use_v the_o proper_a mean_n and_o tend_v to_o recovery_n it_o be_v certain_o a_o kindness_n do_v they_o all_o she_o do_v not_o say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o among_o christian_n who_o have_v good_a purpose_n and_o good_a desire_n and_o who_o be_v good_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o none_o who_o be_v true_o regenerate_o into_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 9_o she_o say_v *_o to_o be_v a_o true_a christian_a be_v to_o imitate_v the_o action_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o obey_v his_o instruction_n thus_o jesus_n christ_n say_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o must_v become_v as_o a_o little_a child_n 2_o we_o must_v take_v the_o last_o place_n we_o must_v do_v penitence_n we_o must_v be_v poor_a in_o spirit_n we_o must_v deny_v ourselves_o we_o must_v love_v our_o neighbour_n as_o ourselves_o we_o must_v take_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n by_o force_n we_o must_v pluck_v out_o the_o eye_n or_o cut_v off_o the_o hand_n that_o offend_v we_o we_o must_v leave_v our_o offer_n to_o go_v and_o be_v reconcile_v to_o our_o brother_n we_o must_v love_v our_o enemy_n and_o do_v good_a to_o they_o that_o hate_v we_o that_o we_o can_v serve_v two_o master_n we_o must_v not_o care_v for_o the_o morrow_n but_o lay_v up_o treasure_n in_o heaven_n we_o must_v enter_v by_o the_o strait_a gate_n that_o a_o rich_a man_n will_v hardly_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n that_o we_o must_v take_v up_o our_o cross_n and_o follow_v he_o that_o we_o must_v give_v a_o account_n of_o every_o idle_a word_n that_o god_n hide_v his_o secret_n from_o the_o wise_a and_o prudent_a and_o reveal_v they_o to_o babe_n that_o he_o come_v not_o to_o be_v serve_v but_o to_o serve_v etc._n etc._n she_o appeal_v to_o christian_n whether_o they_o be_v renew_v into_o this_o spirit_n and_o make_v through_o all_o these_o instance_n how_o far_o they_o be_v from_o it_o and_o how_o few_o there_o be_v who_o aspire_v after_o it_o and_o to_o make_v people_n believe_v otherwise_o be_v but_o cheat_a man_n into_o damnation_n 9_o babel_n that_o the_o present_a state_n of_o christendom_n be_v a_o babel_n where_o the_o language_n be_v confound_v and_o the_o builder_n do_v not_o understand_v one_o another_o be_v but_o too_o sad_a a_o truth_n to_o be_v deny_v if_o a_o wise_a master_n builder_n design_n to_o build_v a_o glorious_a city_n babel_n and_o give_v particular_a instruction_n how_o the_o inferior_a workman_n shall_v be_v train_v up_o for_o it_o and_o by_o what_o mark_v they_o shall_v be_v choose_v and_o what_o measure_v they_o shall_v observe_v in_o square_n fit_v and_o lay_v of_o the_o stone_n and_o if_o the_o workman_n shall_v be_v train_v up_o by_o quite_o different_a measure_n and_o choose_v for_o the_o office_n by_o other_o mark_n and_o if_o the_o workman_n do_v so_o far_o mistake_v their_o measure_n rule_n and_o instruction_n as_o that_o some_o of_o they_o say_v he_o command_v one_o thing_n and_o other_o the_o quite_o contrary_a some_o that_o the_o stone_n shall_v be_v hew_v after_o such_o a_o way_n and_o other_o after_o a_o quite_o different_a way_n and_o shall_v live_v in_o a_o continual_a debate_n and_o scuffle_n each_o side_n contend_v that_o they_o be_v only_o in_o the_o right_n and_o strive_v to_o draw_v as_o many_o stone_n as_o they_o can_v to_o themselves_o and_o then_o instead_o of_o careful_o and_o wise_o hew_v they_o and_o fit_v they_o for_o the_o building_n shall_v animate_v
god_n give_v they_o light_n and_o they_o shall_v reign_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o see_v isa_n 60._o in_o a_o word_n she_o make_v appear_v that_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o parable_n figure_n and_o prophecy_n do_v point_n out_o this_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n with_o man_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o design_n which_o god_n have_v over_o men._n and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o just_a and_o necessary_a thing_n it_o be_v unconceivable_a that_o god_n will_v have_v create_v this_o beautiful_a world_n only_o for_o this_o short_a life_n of_o penitence_n only_o for_o our_o misery_n only_o to_o serve_v devil_n and_o man_n as_o instrument_n of_o their_o wickedness_n and_o rebellion_n against_o he_o and_o then_o shall_v abolish_v this_o great_a work_n of_o his_o hand_n 7._o that_o it_o be_v most_o just_a that_o all_o thing_n be_v re-establish_v in_o their_o first_o state_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v restore_v that_o reparation_n be_v make_v of_o all_o the_o injury_n and_o affront_v do_v to_o his_o humanity_n and_o to_o those_o who_o love_v and_o follow_v he_o and_o that_o all_o that_o have_v be_v do_v unjust_o be_v repair_v both_o bodily_a and_o spiritual_o and_o that_o on_o the_o same_o theatre_n that_o god_n have_v give_v man_n both_o a_o body_n and_o soul_n there_o must_v be_v likewise_o a_o paradise_n for_o both_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n be_v the_o complete_a paradise_n of_o the_o one_o and_o all_o this_o visible_a world_n with_o all_o thing_n in_o it_o free_v from_o all_o malignity_n and_o god_n dwell_v visible_o and_o bodily_a with_o man_n therein_o the_o paradise_n of_o the_o other_o which_o will_v endure_v for_o ever_o for_o god_n recompense_n be_v not_o temporal_a and_o finite_a but_o eternal_a as_o come_v from_o a_o eternal_a god_n who_o can_v give_v finite_a or_o imperfect_a gift_n xli_o scripture_n these_o be_v the_o most_o singular_a of_o her_o accessary_a sentiment_n and_o by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o inconsistent_a with_o themselves_o nor_o with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o with_o the_o necessary_a and_o essential_a truth_n of_o christianity_n that_o they_o serve_v to_o clear_v a_o thousand_o passage_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o they_o tend_v to_o promote_v the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o man_n and_o lead_v we_o to_o mortify_v our_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o to_o despise_v this_o present_a world_n a._n b._n herself_o do_v not_o at_o first_o speak_v or_o write_v of_o these_o sentiment_n but_o to_o some_o friend_n and_o when_o they_o have_v show_v they_o to_o other_o she_o be_v trouble_v know_v that_o the_o devil_n will_v take_v advantage_n thereby_o to_o make_v they_o despise_v the_o other_o truth_n necessary_a for_o their_o salvation_n even_o as_o many_o of_o our_o saviour_n disciple_n be_v offend_v at_o a_o hard_a say_v of_o his_o 66._o forsake_v he_o and_o walk_v no_o more_o with_o he_o and_o i_o will_v not_o have_v offer_v to_o give_v a_o summary_n of_o those_o her_o accessary_a sentiment_n in_o this_o apology_n but_o that_o they_o be_v now_o all_o public_a in_o her_o print_a write_n they_o who_o have_v set_v themselves_o to_o give_v a_o odious_a character_n of_o she_o and_o her_o sentiment_n to_o the_o world_n will_v be_v sure_a to_o dress_v they_o up_o in_o a_o fool_n be_v coat_n to_o excite_v the_o people_n to_o cry_v out_o both_o of_o she_o and_o they_o away_o with_o they_o crucify_v they_o and_o therefore_o i_o have_v choose_v to_o give_v a_o simple_a and_o true_a narrative_a of_o they_o even_o of_o those_o which_o seem_v most_o singular_a and_o extravagant_a all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v a_o mystery_n and_o the_o most_o ordinary_a thing_n the_o formation_n of_o man_n now_o and_o all_o the_o other_o work_v will_v seem_v to_o we_o as_o strange_a if_o we_o be_v not_o accustom_v to_o see_v they_o every_o day_n such_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v inquire_v into_o neither_o out_o of_o vain_a curiosity_n nor_o from_o a_o dispute_a humour_n 25._o which_o beget_v presumption_n and_o pride_n of_o spirit_n for_o the_o divine_a mystery_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v admire_v and_o adore_v than_o curious_o search_v into_o by_o our_o blind_a reason_n let_v we_o make_v it_o our_o great_a business_n to_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n in_o humility_n and_o self-denial_n 8._o if_o we_o will_v be_v true_o enlighten_v and_o deliver_v from_o all_o blindness_n of_o heart_n 4._o god_n walk_v with_o the_o simple_a he_o reveal_v himself_o to_o the_o humble_a he_o give_v understanding_n to_o little_a one_o he_o open_v his_o mean_v to_o pure_a heart_n and_o he_o hide_v his_o grace_n from_o the_o curious_a and_o the_o proud_a human_a reason_n be_v weak_a and_o may_v be_v deceive_v but_o true_a faith_n can_v be_v deceive_v see_v psal_n 18._o 118._o xlii_o fair_a now_o the_o account_n i_o have_v give_v of_o the_o sentiment_n of_o a._n b._n both_o as_o to_o the_o essential_o and_o accessary_a truth_n of_o christianity_n be_v a_o just_a and_o true_a representation_n which_o may_v be_v more_o full_o and_o satisfy_o have_v from_o she_o own_o write_n and_o i_o shall_v leave_v it_o to_o all_o impartial_a reader_n to_o consider_v whether_o the_o character_n which_o some_o have_v be_v please_v to_o give_v of_o her_o sentiment_n as_o heretical_a blasphemous_a ridiculous_a and_o extravagant_a be_v just_a and_o equal_a and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o result_n rather_o of_o their_o mistake_v and_o prejudices_fw-la than_o a_o plain_a and_o fair_a account_n of_o her_o doctrine_n and_o sentiment_n the_o excellent_a mounseur_fw-fr paschal_n in_o his_o pensees_n chretiennes_n give_v it_o as_o the_o most_o essential_a and_o distinguish_a mark_n and_o character_n of_o true_a religion_n that_o it_o make_v its_o chief_a precept_n and_o the_o great_a and_o essential_a duty_n of_o man_n to_o be_v to_o love_n god_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v the_o peculiar_a and_o singular_a character_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n in_o contradistinction_n to_o all_o other_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v impartial_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n as_o it_o represent_v in_o the_o write_n of_o a._n b._n with_o the_o account_n of_o it_o deliver_v to_o we_o in_o the_o system_n of_o divinity_n of_o the_o respective_a party_n in_o christendom_n i_o think_v it_o will_v evident_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o distinguish_a character_n of_o the_o former_a though_o it_o make_v the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o great_a end_n of_o religion_n and_o all_o the_o other_o duty_n of_o it_o mean_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o that_o end_n and_o that_o the_o other_o though_o they_o can_v omit_v when_o they_o give_v a_o account_n of_o christianity_n to_o mention_v this_o as_o one_o of_o its_o great_a precept_n yet_o they_o so_o shuffle_v and_o confound_v doctrine_n and_o give_v it_o such_o a_o place_n in_o their_o system_n as_o may_v make_v people_n lay_v great_a stress_n on_o other_o thing_n and_o give_v they_o ground_n to_o hope_v they_o may_v be_v save_v without_o it_o or_o without_o conform_v our_o life_n to_o the_o rule_n and_o life_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o lead_v to_o it_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o part._n a_o apology_n for_o m._n ant._n bourignon_n part_n ii_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o prejudices_fw-la raise_v against_o her_o sentiment_n and_o write_n i._o rash_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o ordinary_a than_o for_o people_n upon_o light_n and_o weak_a ground_n to_o take_v up_o prejudices_fw-la against_o the_o person_n and_o sentiment_n of_o other_o and_o to_o judge_v rash_o and_o inconsiderate_o of_o they_o and_o this_o be_v a_o fault_n to_o which_o people_n of_o all_o temper_n be_v subject_a the_o learned_a the_o dogmatical_a and_o the_o abettor_n of_o party_n can_v endure_v any_o thing_n that_o seem_v to_o lessen_v the_o credit_n of_o their_o sentiment_n or_o their_o party_n they_o present_o raise_v a_o hue-and-cry_a and_o do_v all_o they_o can_v to_o animate_v the_o people_n thus_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n be_v full_a of_o spite_n and_o prejudice_n against_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o inspire_v the_o people_n with_o the_o same_o spirit_n the_o generality_n of_o man_n see_v with_o other_o man_n eye_n and_o judge_v with_o other_o man_n understanding_n they_o can_v be_v at_o the_o pain_n to_o weigh_v and_o consider_v thing_n impartial_o themselves_o but_o they_o trust_v to_o the_o skill_n and_o sincerity_n of_o those_o who_o pretend_v to_o judge_v for_o they_o and_o such_o for_o the_o most_o part_n judge_v rash_o and_o by_o their_o passion_n lead_v the_o multitude_n to_o do_v so_o too_o yea_o even_o person_n of_o good_a inclination_n and_o who_o have_v a_o true_a zeal_n for_o god_n and_o divine_a thing_n be_v apt_a to_o commit_v the_o same_o fault_n thus_o st._n paul_n before_o he_o be_v
the_o love_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o creature_n and_o yet_o think_v to_o be_v save_v for_o their_o divine_n have_v find_v out_o philosophical_a reason_n to_o maintain_v this_o yet_o 59_o she_o say_v what_o she_o have_v write_v of_o the_o learned_a be_v not_o that_o she_o will_v despise_v learning_n or_o the_o study_n of_o science_n and_o language_n since_o all_o these_o thing_n may_v serve_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n when_o we_o will_v apply_v they_o to_o those_o end_n and_o moral_a virtue_n give_v advantage_n to_o divine_a virtue_n for_o a_o well_o breed_v person_n will_v still_o be_v more_o docile_a in_o the_o practice_n of_o true_a virtue_n than_o one_o ill-bred_a and_o one_o of_o good_a learning_n will_v be_v more_o able_a to_o understand_v and_o receive_v true_a virtue_n than_o a_o rude_a and_o ignorant_a person_n so_o that_o what_o say_v she_o make_v i_o fear_v that_o few_o of_o the_o learned_a and_o of_o the_o great_a shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v that_o i_o see_v in_o effect_n that_o very_o few_o of_o they_o be_v humble_a in_o heart_n and_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a speak_v natural_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o esteem_v themselves_o more_o than_o another_o as_o have_v more_o ground_n for_o it_o and_o unless_o by_o divine_a virtue_n a_o learned_a person_n know_v the_o misery_n and_o ignorance_n into_o which_o sin_n have_v plunge_v he_o he_o can_v never_o be_v without_o self-esteem_a and_o presumption_n of_o spirit_n which_o thing_n god_n resist_v and_o do_v not_o give_v they_o his_o grace_n for_o of_o necessity_n they_o must_v be_v humble_a in_o heart_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o because_o this_o sentiment_n falsa_fw-la concern_v the_o nature_n of_o humane_a reason_n be_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o learned_a i_o shall_v here_o brief_o represent_v it_o in_o a_o light_n and_o method_n conformable_a to_o our_o way_n of_o reason_v and_o inquire_v into_o thing_n as_o it_o be_v most_o rational_o and_o full_o account_v for_o by_o m._n poiret_n in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr erudition_n to_o which_o i_o refer_v those_o who_o desire_v to_o inquire_v far_o into_o it_o for_o full_a satisfaction_n 1._o the_o original_a end_n of_o god_n create_v man_n be_v to_o enjoy_v he_o and_o all_o his_o work_n the_o one_o as_o his_o essential_a happiness_n and_o the_o other_o as_o accessary_a he_o therefore_o give_v he_o a_o immortal_a and_o divine_a soul_n and_o a_o material_a body_n and_o endue_v these_o with_o suitable_a faculty_n capable_a of_o enjoy_v this_o twofold_a happiness_n the_o one_o material_a and_o sensible_a his_o bodily_a sense_n by_o which_o he_o may_v take_v in_o the_o beauty_n and_o delight_n of_o all_o the_o creature_n and_o the_o other_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a his_o understanding_n by_o which_o he_o may_v be_v capable_a of_o enjoy_v god_n and_o divine_a thing_n and_o of_o receive_v his_o light_n and_o love_n 2._o those_o faculty_n be_v passive_a and_o do_v not_o by_o any_o activity_n of_o they_o produce_v their_o object_n but_o only_o be_v lay_v open_a and_o turn_v to_o they_o to_o receive_v they_o our_o eye_n do_v not_o form_v the_o light_n but_o only_o passive_o receive_v it_o and_o the_o beauty_n of_o the_o other_o creature_n and_o in_o the_o night_n though_o we_o open_v and_o turn_v they_o about_o never_o so_o earnest_o we_o meet_v with_o nothing_o but_o darkness_n so_o be_v it_o as_o to_o our_o spiritual_a faculty_n and_o their_o object_n 3._o those_o respective_a object_n when_o they_o be_v present_a to_o their_o respective_a faculty_n do_v make_v so_o strong_a and_o vivid_v a_o impression_n on_o they_o that_o in_o their_o absence_n we_o be_v capable_a of_o form_v to_o ourselves_o in_o our_o mind_n image_n and_o picture_n of_o they_o and_o of_o compound_v or_o divide_v or_o compare_v these_o picture_n together_o and_o of_o form_v proposition_n and_o consultation_n about_o they_o and_o according_a as_o these_o passive_a faculty_n have_v receive_v due_a and_o vivid_v impression_n or_o faint_a or_o none_o at_o all_o from_o their_o respective_a object_n we_o be_v according_o capable_a of_o form_v true_a or_o false_a picture_n of_o they_o and_o this_o be_v the_o active_a faculty_n which_o we_o call_v reason_n 4._o the_o knowledge_n we_o have_v by_o the_o impression_n from_o the_o object_n themselves_o in_o our_o passive_a faculty_n be_v a_o love_a solid_a real_a knowledge_n make_v we_o enjoy_v the_o object_n and_o the_o delight_n and_o happiness_n it_o can_v give_v we_o the_o knowledge_n we_o have_v by_o the_o exercise_n of_o this_o active_a faculty_n of_o our_o reason_n be_v a_o dead_a dry_a barren_a superficial_a knowledge_n that_o communicate_v nothing_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o delight_n and_o reality_n of_o the_o object_n themselves_o we_o see_v what_o a_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o behold_v the_o sun_n and_o form_v to_o ourselves_o idea_n and_o picture_n of_o he_o in_o his_o absence_n the_o first_o enlighten_v warm_v delight_n direct_v we_o let_v we_o see_v the_o beauty_n of_o all_o the_o creation_n the_o other_o afford_v nothing_o of_o this_o and_o if_o we_o have_v still_o be_v blind_a and_o never_o see_v the_o light_n even_o the_o very_a picture_n of_o it_o we_o fancy_n to_o ourselves_o will_v be_v false_a as_o well_o as_o superficial_a now_o it_o be_v just_a the_o same_o as_o to_o the_o spiritual_a thing_n the_o natural_a man_n perceive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n they_o seem_v foolishness_n to_o he_o his_o idea_n and_o reason_n about_o they_o be_v like_o a_o blind_a man_n reason_v about_o colour_n and_o though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o just_a yet_o they_o can_v make_v he_o happy_a nor_o to_o enjoy_v the_o object_n themselves_o no_o more_o than_o a_o man_n draw_v the_o picture_n of_o light_n fire_n meat_n and_o drink_v can_v enlighten_v warm_a and_o nourish_v his_o body_n our_o soul_n must_v be_v turn_v to_o god_n and_o take_v off_o from_o all_o other_o thing_n and_o bless_v be_v the_o pure_a in_o heart_n for_o they_o shall_v see_v god_n the_o knowledge_n we_o have_v by_o reason_n then_o be_v a_o superficial_a barren_a and_o dead_a knowledge_n do_v not_o bring_v to_o the_o soul_n the_o true_a and_o live_a knowledge_n of_o god_n they_o who_o give_v themselves_o up_o to_o it_o do_v real_o deny_v god_n make_v their_o reason_n their_o god_n be_v guilty_a of_o a_o more_o dangerous_a idolatry_n than_o they_o who_o worship_v the_o sun_n and_o how_o universal_a this_o evil_n be_v now_o in_o the_o world_n he_o that_o run_v may_v read_v the_o true_a and_o live_a knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v have_v only_o from_o god_n our_o divine_a faculty_n must_v be_v turn_v to_o he_o and_o turn_v away_o from_o other_o thing_n that_o they_o may_v be_v enlighten_v by_o he_o they_o be_v in_o our_o corrupt_a state_n more_o dead_a and_o defile_v and_o vitiate_v than_o the_o weak_a or_o most_o blind_a eye_n and_o reason_v will_v not_o recover_v they_o more_o than_o it_o will_v give_v eye_n to_o the_o blind_a physic_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o heal_v they_o and_o the_o law_n and_o life_n of_o jesus_n christ_n transcribe_v into_o our_o heart_n and_o practice_n be_v the_o only_a remedy_n for_o they_o xix_o sect._n they_o accuse_v she_o that_o she_o design_v to_o form_v a_o new_a sect_n and_o party_n and_o so_o to_o increase_v the_o division_n and_o schism_n in_o christendom_n whereas_o no_o body_n do_v more_o deplore_v the_o division_n of_o christian_n than_o she_o she_o see_v that_o schism_n and_o sect_n serve_v only_o to_o destroy_v true_a charity_n the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o man_n and_o bring_v in_o nothing_o but_o hatred_n envy_n and_o every_o evil_a work_n under_o a_o cover_n of_o different_a form_n and_o opinion_n she_o desire_v nothing_o but_o to_o reunite_v christian_n in_o one_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o have_v obtain_v that_o will_v have_v be_v willing_a to_o have_v spend_v to_o the_o last_o drop_n of_o she_o blood_n she_o protest_v a_o hundred_o and_o a_o hundred_o time_n that_o she_o will_v establish_v no_o party_n nor_o draw_v any_o after_o she_o but_o send_v all_o to_o jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n she_o shun_v the_o conversation_n of_o man_n and_o live_v always_o shut_v up_o in_o a_o chamber_n she_o wish_v never_o to_o see_v any_o body_n provide_v they_o be_v all_o unite_a to_o god_n to_o set_v up_o a_o sect_n be_v to_o leave_v a_o society_n and_o a_o certain_a public_a worship_n where_o person_n be_v once_o member_n and_o to_o establish_v another_o to_o which_o they_o draw_v by_o human_a motive_n as_o many_o person_n as_o they_o can_v and_o acknowledge_v they_o as_o member_n of_o it_o when_o they_o make_v a_o verbal_a
that_o god_n dwell_v in_o my_o heart_n by_o his_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o charity_n and_o that_o he_o make_v i_o govern_v all_o my_o action_n by_o the_o square_n of_o these_o virtue_n which_o be_v a_o sufficient_a evidence_n to_o i_o that_o it_o be_v god_n who_o guide_v i_o since_o the_o devil_n and_o nature_n have_v nothing_o of_o these_o virtue_n and_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v a_o sure_a testimony_n that_o a_o soul_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n than_o when_o it_o be_v possess_v with_o the_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o charity_n of_o god_n i_o imagine_v if_o bucchardus_fw-la hear_v that_o i_o say_v i_o have_v the_o truth_n 209._o righteousness_n and_o charity_n of_o moses_n he_o will_v condemn_v i_o more_o than_o ever_o have_v do_v it_o so_o often_o through_o his_o book_n though_o i_o have_v not_o there_o speak_v open_o of_o the_o grace_n which_o god_n have_v give_v i_o but_o the_o be_v condemn_v by_o so_o imperfect_a a_o man_n can_v do_v no_o hurt_n to_o my_o soul_n for_o god_n know_v it_o be_v he_o who_o command_v i_o to_o do_v this_o and_o it_o matter_n little_a whether_o it_o please_v or_o displease_v man_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o i_o when_o it_o please_v god_n yet_o i_o will_v not_o say_v that_o i_o have_v the_o same_o degree_n of_o the_o virtue_n righteousness_n and_o charity_n that_o moses_n have_v for_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v to_o i_o how_o much_o of_o they_o he_o impart_v to_o he_o but_o i_o will_v only_o say_v that_o my_o soul_n be_v possess_v in_o proportion_n with_o the_o same_o charity_n righteousness_n and_o truth_n that_o moses_n have_v but_o if_o he_o have_v a_o pound_n of_o each_o of_o these_o virtue_n and_o i_o a_o ounce_n only_o i_o do_v not_o at_o all_o know_v neither_o will_v i_o ask_v for_o the_o virtue_n of_o another_o do_v not_o concern_v i_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o that_o i_o be_v faithful_a in_o what_o be_v commit_v to_o i_o if_o god_n have_v give_v i_o his_o divine_a love_n i_o must_v do_v all_o my_o action_n and_o form_v all_o my_o intention_n for_o this_o love_n without_o seek_v in_o any_o thing_n my_o own_o or_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o man_n and_o if_o god_n have_v give_v i_o his_o righteousness_n i_o must_v exercise_v this_o virtue_n equal_o in_o thing_n great_a and_o little_a according_a to_o my_o employ_v do_v always_o just_o to_o every_o one_o even_o to_o my_o enemy_n and_o god_n have_v so_o plant_v this_o righteousness_n in_o the_o bottom_n of_o my_o soul_n that_o i_o can_v suffer_v injustice_n towards_o the_o beast_n far_o less_o towards_o any_o person_n and_o the_o truth_n that_o god_n have_v impart_v to_o i_o be_v so_o root_v in_o my_o soul_n that_o i_o suffer_v for_o it_o all_o sort_n of_o persecution_n and_o though_o it_o be_v hard_a for_o i_o to_o suffer_v so_o much_o for_o have_v tell_v the_o truth_n which_o god_n command_v i_o i_o can_v cease_v to_o do_v it_o for_o it_o be_v better_a to_o obey_v god_n than_o man._n as_o to_o the_o accusation_n of_o pride_n etc._n for_o say_v that_o she_o underderstood_v all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n without_o have_v read_v they_o that_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o father_n that_o they_o understand_v what_o man_n have_v need_v of_o then_o that_o god_n now_o reveal_v the_o secret_n which_o he_o will_v then_o have_v keep_v to_o be_v hide_v that_o the_o prophet_n have_v indeed_o declare_v all_o that_o must_v come_v to_o pass_v but_o neither_o they_o themselves_o nor_o any_o other_o understand_v their_o say_n that_o all_o this_o be_v speak_v without_o blasphemous_a pride_n appear_v by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o discourse_n and_o the_o compare_v it_o with_o all_o her_o write_n that_o the_o prophet_n have_v vision_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v which_o they_o themselves_o do_v not_o perfect_o understand_v can_v be_v deny_v that_o god_n may_v give_v a_o full_a understanding_n of_o they_o near_o the_o time_n of_o their_o accomplishment_n be_v no_o absurd_a nor_o impossible_a thing_n that_o he_o have_v be_v please_v so_o to_o do_v to_o this_o virgin_n all_o her_o write_n do_v testify_v that_o she_o declare_v this_o without_o pride_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o all_o her_o write_n so_o in_o that_o very_a place_n cite_v 137._o where_o she_o say_v yes_o sir_n i_o may_v say_v it_o with_o confusion_n that_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o communicate_v his_o secret_n to_o i_o which_o he_o have_v hide_v from_o the_o wise_a and_o great_a of_o the_o earth_n if_o such_o have_v be_v his_o will_n who_o can_v reprove_v it_o or_o find_v fault_n with_o that_o which_o he_o find_v good_a be_v not_o he_o the_o absolute_a lord_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o which_o he_o will_v he_o can_v do_v without_o man_n be_v able_a to_o contradict_v it_o for_o no_o body_n be_v capable_a of_o give_v law_n to_o he_o he_o be_v as_o powerful_a as_o just_o and_o good_a let_v we_o only_o adore_v his_o design_n though_o i_o be_v eu●n_v the_o most_o wicked_a creature_n in_o the_o world_n he_o may_v serve_v himself_o of_o i_o in_o what_o please_v he_o and_o then_o may_v damn_v i_o in_o the_o end_n if_o i_o have_v merit_v it_o all_o thing_n be_v subject_n to_o he_o all_o must_v obey_v he_o the_o infernal_a power_n as_o well_o as_o the_o celestial_a and_o terrestrial_a nothing_o can_v resist_v his_o almighty_a arm_n i_o must_v submit_v if_o god_n will_v declare_v his_o marvel_n by_o i_o i_o can_v hinder_v he_o if_o he_o will_v speak_v by_o a_o stone_n or_o wood_n he_o ought_v to_o be_v hear_v with_o respect_n and_o as_o to_o the_o expression_n in_o one_o of_o her_o letter_n 43._o wherein_o she_o call_v herself_o a_o mother_n of_o true_a believer_n for_o which_o the_o anabaptist_n or_o mennonist_n accuse_v she_o of_o blasphemous_a pride_n she_o unanswerable_o vindicate_v herself_o i_o do_v not_o wonder_v say_v she_o that_o those_o mennonist_n be_v scandalize_v at_o it_o for_o they_o do_v not_o know_v from_o what_o fund_z it_o be_v take_v and_o while_o they_o think_v i_o be_o lead_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n with_o they_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v scandalize_v at_o the_o simple_a truth_n with_o which_o i_o express_v my_o sentiment_n they_o think_v i_o will_v do_v better_a to_o study_v humble_a word_n to_o speak_v sober_o in_o what_o relate_v to_o i_o and_o that_o i_o ought_v not_o to_o tell_v so_o open_o the_o thing_n which_o god_n communicate_v to_o i_o for_o they_o practise_v the_o quite_o contrary_a to_o my_o sentiment_n and_o yet_o think_v they_o possess_v the_o fine_a virtue_n they_o have_v for_o a_o maxim_n to_o learn_v to_o speak_v humble_o and_o have_v for_o rule_n to_o be_v simple_o apparel_v to_o be_v strict_o unite_v to_o their_o party_n and_o not_o to_o converse_v nor_o drink_v or_o eat_v with_o those_o who_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o it_o and_o far_o less_o to_o assist_v they_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v contrary_a to_o what_o god_n have_v plant_v in_o my_o soul_n to_o study_v to_o speak_v humble_o of_o one_o self_n have_v a_o proud_a heart_n be_v a_o great_a pride_n accompany_v with_o deceit_n and_o lie_v the_o pride_n consist_v in_o desire_v to_o be_v think_v humble_a before_o man_n by_o speak_v humble_o the_o lie_v consist_v in_o say_v often_o that_o which_o be_v false_a for_o he_o who_o say_v he_o be_v weak_a and_o have_v no_o good_a in_o he_o be_v sometime_o so_o proud_a at_o the_o bottom_n that_o he_o can_v endure_v that_o another_o shall_v have_v so_o mean_v thought_n of_o he_o and_o will_v be_v ill_o content_a to_o hear_v some_o one_o say_v that_o he_o have_v not_o virtue_n or_o that_o he_o be_v not_o in_o a_o state_n of_o perfection_n do_v you_o not_o remember_v sir_n that_o some_o of_o those_o learned_a person_n ask_v you_o if_o i_o dare_v say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o regenerate_v in_o jesus_n christ_n while_o none_o of_o their_o action_n do_v discover_v this_o regeneration_n for_o we_o see_v they_o as_o much_o wed_v to_o earthly_a thing_n as_o other_o man_n for_o they_o be_v well_o please_v to_o be_v honour_v and_o serve_v and_o esteem_v by_o every_o body_n if_o they_o be_v regenerate_v all_o these_o desire_n will_v be_v dead_a in_o they_o the_o spirit_n of_o poverty_n suffering_n humility_n and_o charity_n will_v effectual_o live_v in_o their_o soul_n for_o regeneration_n consist_v in_o die_v to_o one_o self_n to_o live_v to_o god_n and_o if_o they_o be_v dead_a to_o the_o world_n they_o wuold_v seek_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v above_o and_o no_o long_o those_o which_o be_v on_o earth_n and_o yet_o they_o who_o be_v sink_v into_o the_o traffic_n of_o the_o world_n and_o gain_v as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o will_v have_v it_o be_v believe_v that_o
a_o man_n according_a to_o the_o different_a state_n of_o this_o life_n either_o literal_o or_o spiritual_o if_o he_o live_v carnal_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o visible_a flesh_n if_o he_o live_v spiritual_o it_o denote_v also_o the_o flesh_n but_o a_o more_o subtle_a flesh_n to_o which_o he_o must_v likewise_o die_v but_o before_o he_o die_v to_o it_o he_o must_v first_o live_v to_o it_o but_o he_o can_v live_v to_o it_o until_o he_o be_v first_o dead_a to_o the_o more_o gross_a carnality_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o a_o man_n can_v conceive_v this_o sublime_a way_n of_o die_v until_o he_o have_v attain_v to_o that_o degree_n but_o if_o any_o attain_v it_o rather_o in_o the_o contemplation_n than_o as_o to_o the_o true_a essence_n of_o thing_n there_o be_v great_a hazard_n of_o err_v the_o carnal_a life_n spiritual_o understand_v be_v most_o clear_o express_v in_o that_o rich_a man_n who_o be_v clothe_v in_o purple_a and_o fare_v sumptuous_o while_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n lazarus_n be_v lie_v poor_a and_o hungry_a and_o naked_a and_o full_a of_o sore_n but_o what_o be_v the_o event_n riches_n be_v reduce_v into_o the_o extreme_a poverty_n and_o extreme_a poverty_n be_v exchange_v for_o the_o great_a riches_n we_o ought_v to_o consider_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v dispense_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o afford_v life_n and_o nourishment_n for_o man_n soul_n according_a to_o all_o the_o different_a state_n of_o man_n and_o all_o the_o several_a age_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o the_o same_o holy_a spirit_n that_o indict_v they_o give_v the_o true_a understanding_n of_o they_o only_o to_o humble_a and_o simple_a soul_n so_o he_o give_v they_o different_a degree_n of_o light_n and_o notice_n from_o they_o according_a to_o the_o different_a state_n they_o be_v advance_v to_o when_o it_o be_v for_o their_o own_o spiritual_a profit_n only_o or_o according_a to_o the_o different_a state_n of_o the_o church_n when_o it_o be_v for_o the_o spiritual_a good_a of_o the_o rest_n of_o mankind_n and_o when_o he_o be_v to_o accomplish_v the_o thing_n he_o have_v foretell_v and_o all_o these_o sense_n be_v intend_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n one_o of_o they_o always_o be_v not_o only_o true_a in_o itself_o but_o also_o a._n figure_n and_o similitude_n of_o what_o be_v to_o follow_v and_o the_o full_a sense_n of_o they_o can_v be_v have_v till_o the_o perfection_n and_o completion_n of_o all_o thing_n we_o see_v a_o image_n of_o this_o in_o natural_a thing_n thus_o the_o bud_n of_o fruit-tree_n in_o the_o winter-season_n be_v very_o small_a to_o appearance_n and_o seem_v nothing_o but_o a_o little_a dry_a excrescence_n but_o when_o the_o spring_n come_v first_o the_o leave_v break_v forth_o and_o after_o they_o the_o flower_n and_o blossom_n and_o last_o of_o all_o the_o fruit_n which_o by_o degree_n advance_v to_o ripeness_n and_o perfection_n all_o which_o be_v not_o new_o form_v but_o be_v original_o in_o the_o bud_n even_o in_o the_o winter-season_n and_o be_v discoverable_a by_o magnify_v glass_n so_o they_o be_v only_o a_o evolution_n and_o display_v of_o what_o be_v all_o former_o shut_v up_o in_o the_o bud_n according_a to_o the_o different_a season_n thus_o from_o the_o small_a egg_n of_o infect_v there_o break_v out_o first_o caterpillar_n and_o small_a worm_n which_o afterward_o cast_v skin_n put_v on_o another_o shape_n and_o at_o last_o break_v forth_o into_o butterfly_n or_o fly_v of_o their_o respective_a kind_n which_o be_v no_o transformation_n but_o a_o evolution_n of_o part_n which_o be_v former_o wrap_v up_o within_o the_o caterpillar_n as_o it_o be_v in_o swaddling-cloath_n as_o dr._n swammerdam_n most_o ingenious_o discover_v and_o be_v no_o doubt_n also_o original_o within_o the_o little_a egg._n so_o the_o same_o seed_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o to_o the_o natural_a man_n seem_v dry_a and_o insipid_a do_v by_o the_o warmth_n and_o operation_n of_o god_n spirit_n display_v different_a degree_n of_o light_n and_o truth_n according_a to_o the_o different_a degree_n by_o which_o the_o soul_n advance_v towards_o god_n or_o the_o period_n of_o time_n in_o which_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v accomplish_v the_o display_v of_o one_o degree_n still_o make_v way_n for_o another_o thus_o god_n in_o his_o word_n have_v prohibit_v idolatry_n when_o all_o the_o heathen_a nation_n be_v give_v to_o the_o worship_v of_o idol_n and_o the_o grossness_n and_o rudeness_n of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n be_v such_o that_o they_o be_v easy_o lead_v to_o imitate_v they_o the_o commandment_n be_v understand_v no_o far_o but_o when_o afterward_o in_o our_o saviour_n day_n they_o have_v a_o sufficient_a aversion_n from_o the_o worship_v of_o outward_a idol_n in_o grove_n or_o temple_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n their_o heart_n be_v set_v upon_o riches_n and_o this_o world_n good_n the_o commandment_n be_v far_o explain_v and_o they_o be_v tell_v that_o that_o be_v idolatry_n and_o that_o they_o can_v not_o serve_v god_n and_o mammon_n and_o as_o the_o soul_n be_v wean_v from_o this_o idol_n and_o advance_n to_o another_o state_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v there_o also_o discover_v to_o it_o other_o more_o spiritual_a thing_n which_o it_o be_v ready_a to_o worship_v instead_o of_o god_n and_o so_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n law_n be_v display_v to_o it_o far_o beyond_o what_o can_v be_v at_o first_o conceive_v so_o true_a be_v that_o of_o the_o psalmist_n i_o have_v see_v a_o end_n of_o all_o perfection_n but_o thy_o commandment_n be_v exceed_v broad_a this_o with_o those_o who_o be_v not_o dispose_v to_o cavil_v will_v serve_v to_o clear_v a._n b._n as_o to_o this_o accusation_n form_v against_o she_o and_o as_o to_o the_o passage_n mention_v as_o 1_o cor._n 13._o 8._o etc._n etc._n though_o ultimate_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v yet_o it_o be_v no_o absurdity_n to_o say_v that_o it_o may_v imply_v also_o a_o more_o plentiful_a light_n and_o communication_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o aftertime_n s._n augustin_n we_o see_v give_v a_o interpretation_n of_o it_o relate_v even_o to_o this_o present_a life_n they_o say_v he_o who_o have_v faith_n 39_o hope_n and_o charity_n and_o do_v firm_o cleave_v to_o they_o do_v not_o need_v the_o scripture_n except_o for_o instruct_v other_o and_o therefore_o many_o live_v by_o these_o three_o in_o the_o desert_n without_o book_n whence_o i_o think_v that_o say_v be_v already_o fulfil_v in_o they_o whether_o there_o be_v prophecy_n they_o shall_v fail_v whether_o there_o be_v tongue_n they_o shall_v cease_v whether_o there_o be_v knowledge_n it_o shall_v vanish_v away_o as_o to_o job_n 12._o 32._o i_o think_v it_o will_v be_v grant_v that_o the_o full_a completion_n of_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v to_o pass_v but_o be_v that_o we_o look_v for_o as_o for_o her_o exposition_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n no_o body_n who_o love_v not_o to_o carp_v will_v be_v scandalize_v at_o it_o 28._o she_o say_v that_o in_o it_o be_v comprehend_v all_o that_o we_o can_v ever_o ask_v of_o god_n for_o his_o honour_n and_o our_o salvation_n all_o the_o adoration_n we_o owe_v to_o god_n all_o the_o thanksgiving_n we_o can_v render_v he_o all_o that_o we_o may_v or_o aught_o to_o ask_v of_o he_o for_o ourselves_o or_o for_o all_o other_o and_o therefore_o though_o it_o contain_v all_o the_o thing_n that_o relate_v to_o our_o pilgrimage_n in_o our_o way_n to_o eternal_a bliss_n and_o so_o may_v be_v understand_v in_o that_o sense_n likewise_o as_o she_o do_v so_o interpret_v it_o in_o other_o place_n yet_o since_o it_o contain_v all_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o ask_v of_o god_n and_o nothing_o in_o perfection_n be_v grant_v here_o and_o god_n will_v not_o make_v we_o ask_v the_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o grant_v it_o be_v most_o reasonable_a to_o conclude_v that_o this_o most_o excellent_a prayer_n in_o its_o complete_a and_o perfect_a sense_n refer_v to_o a_o future_a state_n which_o he_o will_v have_v we_o always_o to_o long_o after_o as_o the_o jew_n do_v jerusalem_n when_o they_o be_v by_o the_o river_n of_o babylon_n and_o in_o which_o we_o shall_v obtain_v in_o perfection_n the_o effect_n of_o our_o request_n xxvi_o repetition_n some_o be_v great_o disgu_v because_o they_o think_v her_o write_n be_v full_a of_o tautology_n and_o repetition_n and_o without_o exactness_n of_o order_n and_o method_n have_v she_o put_v her_o thought_n in_o a_o orderly_a system_n as_o the_o learned_a do_v they_o may_v have_v look_v into_o they_o but_o when_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v say_v over_o and_o over_o again_o preface_n this_o pass_v in_o their_o style_n for_o cant_n and_o they_o nauseate_a
and_o extraordinary_a xx._n answer_v 2._o it_o be_v object_v against_o her_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o many_o have_v have_v vision_n and_o revelation_n and_o yet_o not_o from_o god_n but_o that_o they_o have_v be_v act_v either_o by_o the_o heat_n of_o their_o own_o imagination_n or_o by_o illusion_n from_o the_o devil_n who_o can_v transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o work_v upon_o the_o fancy_n and_o imagination_n of_o corrupt_a man_n so_o as_o to_o make_v his_o illusion_n pass_v for_o immediate_a communication_n from_o god_n and_o therefore_o she_o may_v be_v reckon_v among_o the_o enthusiast_n and_o visionary_n with_o which_o the_o world_n abound_v enthusiast_n be_v a_o word_n which_o at_o first_o have_v a_o good_a meaning_n viz._n one_o true_o lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o now_o general_o it_o be_v take_v for_o one_o who_o false_o pretend_v to_o it_o and_o be_v not_o and_o of_o such_o there_o be_v several_a sort_n of_o false_a enthusiast_n in_o the_o world_n though_o all_o of_o they_o do_v not_o go_v under_o that_o name_n 1._o many_o there_o be_v who_o indulge_v still_o their_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o be_v strong_o act_v by_o their_o own_o imagination_n or_o by_o impulse_n of_o the_o devil_n pretend_v to_o divine_a inspiration_n and_o vent_v impious_a absurd_a and_o corrupt_a thing_n as_o inspire_v by_o god_n by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o other_o be_v become_v idolater_n of_o their_o reason_n make_v it_o their_o god_n but_o the_o most_o ordinary_a false_a enthusiast_n be_v they_o who_o least_o of_o all_o will_v own_o the_o name_n those_o i_o mean_v who_o pretend_v to_o be_v ambassador_n from_o god_n and_o that_o to_o resist_v they_o be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o resist_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o that_o their_o sermon_n and_o explication_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n though_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v far_o from_o be_v enlighten_v by_o he_o vent_v their_o own_o notion_n passion_n error_n and_o wrangling_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wrest_v it_o to_o speak_v as_o they_o will_v have_v it_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n hate_v and_o persecute_v those_o who_o be_v true_o teach_v of_o god_n and_o call_v they_o by_o the_o odious_a name_n that_o belong_v to_o themselves_o true_o divine_a inspiration_n so_o far_o as_o we_o can_v conceive_v it_o from_o the_o representation_n of_o those_o who_o have_v be_v true_o and_o immediate_o illuminate_v of_o god_n may_v be_v consider_v under_o these_o two_o general_a head_n 1._o either_o god_n communicate_v himself_o his_o light_n and_o truth_n immediate_o to_o the_o soul_n without_o the_o intervention_n of_o any_o sensible_a idea_n or_o image_n or_o 2._o he_o make_v use_v of_o sensible_a image_n to_o affect_v the_o soul_n and_o that_o after_o different_a manner_n by_o dream_n vision_n voice_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v in_o these_o especial_o and_o not_o in_o the_o former_a that_o the_o devil_n labour_v to_o ape_n god_n and_o to_o delude_v soul_n or_o that_o man_n be_v delude_v by_o their_o own_o warm_a imagination_n and_o the_o devil_n illusion_n or_o their_o own_o fancy_n pass_v for_o divine_a vision_n etc._n etc._n now_o that_o the_o motion_n and_o sentiment_n of_o a._n b._n be_v not_o the_o effect_n of_o such_o a_o enthusiasm_n seem_v evident_o to_o appear_v from_o she_o own_o write_n it_o be_v best_a to_o hear_v herself_o that_o i_o may_v satisfy_v say_v she_o to_o a_o great_a lawyer_n the_o question_n so_o oft_o propose_v by_o you_o 1_o how_o i_o understand_v and_o speak_v with_o god_n i_o shall_v tell_v you_o in_o simplicity_n what_o i_o can_v say_v of_o it_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n the_o soul_n be_v a_o spirit_n they_o communicate_v in_o spirit_n they_o be_v not_o verbal_a discourse_n but_o spiritual_a notice_n intelligence_n spirituelle_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v more_o intelligible_a than_o the_o best_a eloquence_n of_o the_o world_n god_n make_v himself_o to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o soul_n by_o inward_a motion_n which_o the_o soul_n understand_v and_o comprehend_v according_a as_o it_o be_v free_v of_o earthly_a idea_n and_o in_o so_o far_o as_o the_o faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n do_v cease_v the_o motion_n of_o god_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o intelligible_a unto_o it_o the_o notice_n of_o god_n be_v infallible_a when_o the_o soul_n be_v free_a of_o all_o image_n and_o in_o a_o forgetfulness_n of_o all_o create_a thing_n but_o they_o be_v doubtful_a when_o it_o act_v by_o imagination_n and_o seek_v sensibility_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o pure_o god_n the_o saint_n themselves_o have_v in_o this_o point_n commit_v mistake_v by_o vision_n vocal_a word_n ecstasy_n or_o other_o sensibility_n to_o which_o the_o imagination_n contribute_v god_n be_v a_o spirit_n the_o soul_n purify_v be_v transform_v into_o he_o and_o have_v no_o need_n of_o word_n nor_o of_o sight_n to_o understand_v he_o more_o than_o we_o need_v a_o eye_n or_o a_o tongue_n to_o understand_v our_o own_o conception_n it_o be_v hard_o to_o declare_v how_o this_o be_v do_v it_o must_v be_v hard_o also_o to_o believe_v it_o and_o in_o effect_v it_o be_v subject_a to_o deception_n and_o illusion_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o the_o imagination_n if_o these_o inward_a notice_n and_o knowledge_n be_v not_o declare_v by_o a_o person_n who_o life_n and_o word_n be_v conformable_a to_o the_o gospel_n as_o be_v inspire_v by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n the_o rest_n of_o this_o letter_n be_v transcribe_v above_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o difficult_a for_o man_n understanding_n than_o to_o discern_v spirit_n 8._o to_o know_v if_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o of_o the_o devil_n or_o from_o nature_n to_o discern_v this_o a_o divine_a light_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n operate_v that_o of_o the_o devil_n or_o of_o nature_n may_v do_v also_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n make_v a_o soul_n say_v that_o which_o be_v to_o its_o praise_n by_o a_o spirit_n of_o simple_a truth_n that_o of_o the_o devil_n will_v make_v the_o same_o thing_n be_v speak_v through_o pure_a pride_n that_o of_o nature_n to_o get_v esteem_n be_v so_o subtle_a in_o its_o flattery_n that_o it_o will_v sometime_o utter_v thing_n to_o its_o contempt_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v humble_a before_o those_o who_o hear_v they_o the_o same_o thing_n may_v be_v holy_a diabolical_a or_o humane_a according_a to_o the_o inward_a intention_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o operate_v which_o god_n alone_o know_v evident_o in_o which_o so_o many_o deceive_v themselves_o who_o presume_v to_o discern_v spirit_n and_o to_o guide_v soul_n by_o their_o own_o natural_a light_n these_o be_v the_o blind_a who_o lead_v the_o blind_a and_o both_o fall_n into_o the_o ditch_n i_o entreat_v you_o to_o remark_n that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v not_o visible_a to_o be_v see_v by_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o body_n where_o he_o reside_v 53._o but_o he_o manifest_v himself_o sufficient_o by_o the_o operation_n which_o he_o produce_v in_o those_o soul_n which_o possess_v he_o they_o be_v adorn_v with_o all_o his_o gift_n and_o fruit_n which_o be_v sure_a mark_n of_o his_o operation_n for_o neither_o the_o devil_n nor_o nature_n can_v work_v such_o effect_n no_o more_o than_o natural_a fruit_n can_v be_v bring_v forth_o without_o the_o tree_n by_o which_o fruit_n we_o discern_v the_o tree_n so_o ought_v we_o to_o discern_v soul_n that_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o to_o regard_v only_o the_o bark_n which_o be_v the_o outward_a action_n and_o word_n there_o be_v occasion_n of_o be_v great_o deceive_v for_o the_o devil_n cover_v himself_o with_o the_o garment_n of_o seem_a virtue_n and_o sanctity_n and_o under_o this_o deceive_v the_o most_o pious_a and_o the_o most_o learned_a the_o twelve_o fruit_n and_o the_o seven_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 29._o and_o the_o eight_o beatitude_n have_v always_o their_o operation_n in_o the_o person_n who_o possess_v the_o holy_a spirit_n who_o can_v reside_v any_o where_o without_o they_o more_o than_o the_o sun_n can_v be_v without_o light_n so_o that_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o seek_v other_o sign_n whereby_o to_o discern_v this_o spirit_n since_o these_o only_o be_v the_o true_a one●_n so_o that_o we_o may_v know_v if_o a_o person_n be_v animate_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n or_o by_o the_o devil_n or_o by_o nature_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o his_o work_n we_o need_v only_o consider_v they_o with_o a_o single_a eye_n with_o a_o pure_a intention_n without_o curiosity_n or_o affectation_n and_o then_o we_o can_v be_v deceive_v for_o god_n
promise_v that_o if_o our_o eye_n be_v single_a our_o whole_a body_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o light_n and_o if_o it_o be_v evil_a it_o will_v be_v full_a of_o darkness_n for_o though_o a_o soul_n have_v not_o in_o itself_o the_o holy_a spirit_n yet_o it_o shall_v have_v the_o understanding_n enlighten_v to_o discover_v he_o in_o other_o provide_v it_o behold_v they_o with_o a_o single_a eye_n without_o dissimulation_n or_o surprise_n but_o in_o the_o simplicity_n of_o a_o child_n as_o jesus_n christ_n say_v we_o must_v be_v in_o if_o we_o will_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n they_o who_o see_v i_o write_v 293._o know_v well_o that_o i_o do_v it_o without_o any_o study_n or_o humane_a speculation_n and_o that_o it_o flow_v from_o my_o spirit_n as_o water_n flow_v from_o its_o fountain_n and_o that_o i_o do_v nothing_o but_o lend_v my_o hand_n and_o my_o spirit_n to_o another_o power_n than_o i_o and_o god_n give_v yet_o a_o more_o sure_a testimony_n by_o impart_v to_o i_o his_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o charity_n for_o these_o thing_n can_v come_v from_o nature_n which_o be_v corrupt_v can_v produce_v no_o good_a nor_o any_o divine_a virtue_n because_o i_o be_o come_v of_o the_o corrupt_a mass_n of_o adam_n as_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o man_n there_o can_v not_o be_v in_o i_o any_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o charity_n which_o be_v all_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a virtue_n which_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n this_o give_v i_o a_o sufficient_a testimony_n that_o i_o be_o lead_v by_o god_n 295._o since_o the_o devil_n and_o nature_n have_v nothing_o of_o those_o virtue_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v find_v a_o sure_a evidence_n that_o a_o soul_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n than_o when_o it_o be_v possess_v of_o the_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o charity_n of_o god_n for_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o see_v miracle_n for_o a_o proof_n we_o may_v be_v deceive_v since_o the_o devil_n can_v do_v miracle_n or_o thing_n which_o seem_v supernatural_a but_o he_o can_v never_o have_v in_o he_o the_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o love_n of_o god_n the_o good_a spirit_n 49._o and_o the_o evil_a may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o quality_n which_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v in_o he_o a_o peace_n and_o sweetness_n that_o comfort_v the_o soul_n and_o draw_v it_o to_o a_o inward_a quiet_a but_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o devil_n disturb_v the_o understanding_n disquiet_v it_o and_o rob_v it_o of_o tranquillity_n and_o rest_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n act_v sweet_o and_o strong_o in_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o mind_n all_o that_o come_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v always_o accompany_v with_o the_o quality_n of_o god_n which_o be_v goodness_n righteousness_n and_o truth_n and_o that_o which_o come_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o devil_n carry_v always_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o be_v malice_n injustice_n and_o lie_v the_o evil_a spirit_n may_v sometime_o move_v to_o do_v a_o good_a thing_n to_o draw_v evil_a out_o of_o it_o but_o that_o seem_a goodness_n can_v never_o be_v accompany_v with_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o inseparable_a quality_n of_o god_n which_o the_o devil_n may_v sometime_o separately_z make_v use_n of_o to_o deceive_v man_n ap_v the_o work_n of_o god_n but_o he_o can_v never_o do_v a_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a just_a and_o true_a altogether_o since_o this_o appertain_v to_o god_n only_o who_o can_v be_v divide_v in_o any_o of_o these_o quality_n god_n do_v not_o speak_v to_o i_o by_o voice_n 300._o thundering_n and_o lightning_n as_o he_o do_v of_o old_a to_o the_o prophet_n or_o as_o he_o speak_v to_o tobit_n by_o angel_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o young_a man_n or_o as_o he_o speak_v to_o jacob_n in_o the_o vision_n of_o a_o ladder_n upon_o which_o angel_n do_v ascend_v and_o descend_v or_o as_o he_o speak_v to_o joseph_n in_o a_o dream_n say_v to_o he_o take_v the_o child_n and_o the_o mother_n and_o flee_v into_o egypt_n for_o i_o dare_v not_o rely_v upon_o all_o these_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o fancy_n of_o man_n may_v mingle_v themselves_o and_o make_v such_o thing_n be_v see_v and_o hear_v as_o if_o they_o come_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o i_o fix_v on_o the_o solid_a truth_n of_o god_n on_o his_o righteousness_n and_o on_o his_o love_n because_o in_o such_o thing_n the_o devil_n can_v have_v no_o hold_n i_o have_v sometime_o have_v dream_n and_o vision_n come_v from_o god_n as_o i_o may_v afterward_o make_v appear_v by_o experience_n but_o i_o do_v not_o rely_v on_o these_o dream_n and_o vision_n unless_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v see_v and_o dream_v be_v confirm_v unto_o i_o by_o a_o secret_a notice_n intelligence_n after_o the_o manner_n that_o i_o converse_v ordinary_o with_o god_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o soul_n be_v free_a of_o all_o image_n and_o deliver_v from_o the_o agitation_n of_o its_o passion_n and_o the_o imagination_n cease_v to_o operate_v then_o i_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n and_o his_o reason_v not_o with_o my_o ear_n but_o with_o my_o understanding_n and_o after_o this_o manner_n he_o make_v i_o see_v and_o hear_v all_o that_o i_o need_v to_o know_v both_o for_o my_o own_o conduct_n and_o that_o of_o other_o which_o many_o have_v experience_v and_o find_v that_o i_o have_v tell_v they_o the_o most_o secret_a thing_n of_o their_o heart_n which_o neither_o man_n nor_o devil_n can_v know_v never_o amuse_v yourself_o with_o discourse_n 57_o vision_n or_o revelation_n make_v to_o you_o or_o other_o if_o you_o do_v not_o perceive_v assure_o that_o they_o be_v accompany_v with_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o good_a spirit_n of_o god_n or_o otherwise_o you_o will_v be_v easy_o deceive_v remark_n always_o if_o what_o you_o say_v or_o do_v be_v accompany_v with_o the_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o then_o you_o shall_v assure_o hear_v god_n speak_v to_o your_o soul_n for_o if_o you_o walk_v in_o these_o quality_n you_o will_v be_v in_o god_n and_o the_o devil_n can_v deceive_v you_o no_o long_o by_o illusion_n or_o false_a imagination_n as_o he_o will_v easy_o do_v so_o long_o as_o you_o do_v not_o possess_v those_o essential_a virtue_n of_o the_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n of_o god_n in_o which_o you_o ought_v always_o to_o walk_v if_o you_o will_v not_o be_v seduce_v by_o satan_n the_o devil_n can_v give_v vision_n 70._o ravishment_n or_o supernatural_a ecstasy_n to_o sorcerer_n yea_o make_v they_o foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v be_v a_o subtle_a spirit_n and_o foresee_v afar_o and_o by_o conjecture_n what_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v and_o he_o may_v make_v they_o fall_v out_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o his_o sorcerer_n who_o be_v powerful_a and_o numerous_a may_v by_o their_o power_n and_o authority_n bring_v about_o what_o have_v be_v before_o tell_v therefore_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o receive_v nothing_o for_o truth_n but_o the_o thing_n which_o lead_v we_o to_o a_o more_o strict_a union_n with_o god_n and_o denial_n of_o ourselves_o these_o thing_n be_v always_o good_a even_o though_o they_o shall_v come_v from_o the_o devil_n himself_o we_o can_v be_v deceive_v in_o believe_v they_o i_o can_v never_o have_v the_o least_o doubt_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o evil_a spirit_n that_o communicate_v himself_o to_o my_o understanding_n 184._o for_o the_o evil_a spirit_n can_v not_o in_o my_o judgement_n produce_v so_o good_a and_o so_o constant_a operation_n such_o as_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o hatred_n of_o one_o self_n moreover_o he_o can_v not_o separate_v the_o soul_n from_o the_o pleasure_n of_o this_o life_n nor_o remove_v from_o it_o the_o covet_v the_o riches_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o give_v it_o a_o full_a contentment_n in_o the_o want_n of_o all_o humane_a consolation_n nor_o yet_o joy_v in_o hardship_n and_o contempt_n all_o these_o thing_n can_v come_v from_o the_o devil_n for_o he_o be_v too_o opposite_a to_o all_o these_o virtue_n and_o lead_v ordinary_o to_o all_o sort_n of_o evil_a though_o at_o first_o he_o cover_v they_o with_o virtue_n the_o end_n of_o his_o operation_n make_v appear_v sufficient_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o author_n and_o make_v know_v the_o workman_n by_o his_o work_n thus_o you_o see_v how_o certain_a mark_v she_o give_v whereby_o to_o distinguish_v true_a from_o false_a enthusiasm_n the_o conduct_n and_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n from_o the_o illusion_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o one_o own_o imagination_n and_o how_o man_n may_v preserve_v themselves_o from_o be_v impose_v upon_o by_o the_o last_o that_o where_o a_o soul_n be_v
pastor_n ask_v who_o she_o be_v she_o she_o tell_v the_o truth_n and_o that_o she_o flee_v out_o of_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o world_n to_o follow_v jesus_n christ_n the_o good_a man_n weep_v and_o his_o soul_n be_v confound_v to_o see_v a_o child_n like_v she_o quit_v all_o the_o wealth_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n to_o embrace_v poverty_n and_o hardship_n while_o he_o after_o so_o many_o year_n of_o penitence_n be_v not_o come_v to_o such_o a_o disengagement_n you_o he_o be_v a_o very_a holy_a man_n who_o live_v in_o continual_a prayer_n and_o penitence_n the_o story_n of_o who_o life_n be_v most_o remarkable_a the_o sum_n of_o it_o be_v thus_o xvi_o this_o pastor_n of_o blatton_n life_n george_n de_fw-fr lisle_n be_v design_v for_o the_o pastoral_n office_n from_o his_o youth_n and_o train_v up_o after_o the_o ordinary_a way_n of_o study_n and_o learning_n he_o have_v for_o some_o year_n exercise_v the_o function_n of_o the_o pastoral_n charge_n after_o the_o manner_n that_o be_v usual_o do_v live_v after_o the_o way_n of_o the_o world_n in_o god_n judgement_n though_o honest_o and_o without_o scandal_n in_o the_o world_n sense_n be_v often_o in_o company_n as_o other_o of_o his_o rank_n and_o there_o divert_v himself_o eat_v drink_v and_o make_v merry_a till_o it_o please_v god_n to_o touch_v his_o heart_n and_o draw_v he_o from_o the_o brink_n of_o perdition_n after_o this_o manner_n he_o and_o the_o mayor_n have_v be_v invite_v on_o shrove-tuesday_n to_o make_v good_a cheer_v with_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o manor_n after_o have_v past_o a_o part_n of_o the_o night_n in_o feast_v as_o they_o come_v home_o about_o midnight_n a_o enrage_a soldier_n meet_v they_o who_o have_v swear_v to_o kill_v the_o first_o he_o meet_v with_o he_o shoot_v the_o mayor_n who_o fall_v down_o dead_a at_o the_o pastor_n foot_n who_o immediate_o be_v inward_o strike_v by_o god_n with_o these_o thought_n how_o be_v it_o that_o thou_o be_v not_o in_o the_o place_n of_o this_o man_n and_o if_o thou_o wet_v there_o in_o what_o state_n can_v thy_o soul_n be_v but_o that_o of_o eternal_a damnation_n die_v in_o so_o wretched_a a_o disposition_n as_o the_o fullness_n of_o meat_n wine_n and_o good_a cheer_n which_o thou_o have_v make_v o_o my_o god_n say_v he_o turn_v sudden_o to_o god_n what_o mercy_n have_v thou_o show_v to_o make_v i_o now_o escape_v the_o eternal_a and_o certain_a damnation_n of_o my_o soul_n i_o will_v now_o watch_v and_o take_v care_n to_o be_v in_o a_o better_a disposition_n which_o he_o resolve_v and_o execute_v from_o that_o very_a moment_n begin_v to_o lead_v a_o penitent_a and_o christian_a life_n without_o ever_o draw_v back_o from_o it_o to_o his_o death_n first_o he_o resolve_v to_o live_v solitary_a for_o some_o time_n to_o strengthen_v he_o in_o good_a and_o have_v substitute_v one_o to_o wait_v on_o his_o cure_n for_o six_o month_n he_o seek_v out_o a_o holy_a person_n by_o who_o he_o may_v be_v direct_v who_o according_o for_o six_o month_n treat_v he_o with_o great_a austerity_n and_o when_o he_o return_v to_o his_o cure_n he_o increase_v and_o continue_v what_o he_o have_v begin_v he_o resolve_v to_o mortify_v his_o body_n because_o it_o be_v so_o ready_a to_o tempt_v his_o soul_n and_o to_o punish_v it_o for_o have_v take_v too_o much_o its_o ease_n and_o pleasure_n because_o he_o have_v please_v himself_o with_o fine_a linen_n and_o fine_a clothes_n he_o never_o wear_v linens_n any_o more_o and_o gird_v himself_o with_o a_o great_a chain_n of_o iron_n which_o go_v twice_o about_o and_o sink_v into_o his_o flesh_n because_o he_o have_v love_v to_o sleep_v at_o ease_n in_o a_o good_a bed_n he_o cause_v they_o to_o bring_v his_o coffin_n and_o a_o stone_n in_o it_o for_o his_o pillow_n where_o he_o lie_v with_o his_o chain_n about_o his_o loin_n all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o life_n because_o he_o have_v take_v too_o much_o rest_n and_o past_a sometime_o a_o part_n of_o the_o night_n in_o mirth_n and_o laughter_n he_o spend_v three_o hour_n every_o night_n from_o eleven_o to_o two_o after_o midnight_n in_o prayer_n and_o tear_n on_o his_o knee_n before_o the_o high_a altar_n of_o his_o church_n to_o bewail_v his_o sin_n and_o man_n blindness_n and_o hardness_n because_o he_o have_v plesae_v himself_o with_o commodious_a lodging_n he_o stay_v in_o a_o apartment_n which_o be_v almost_o always_o full_a of_o smoke_n to_o punish_v the_o excess_n he_o think_v he_o have_v commit_v in_o eat_v and_o drink_v he_o not_o only_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n and_o wine_n all_o his_o day_n but_o also_o seven_o whole_a year_n from_o drink_v wine_n water_n or_o any_o liquor_n he_o will_v have_v be_v in_o the_o heat_n of_o summer_n as_o in_o a_o furnace_n all_o dry_a mouth_n tongue_n palate_n lip_n peel_a on_o fire_n and_o like_o one_o in_o a_o burn_a fever_n he_o renounce_v all_o study_n and_o all_o curious_a learning_n referve_v only_o two_o book_n the_o holy_a bible_n and_o the_o life_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o one_o of_o which_o he_o read_v every_o day_n a_o chapter_n and_o in_o the_o other_o a_o life_n say_v of_o these_o two_o book_n here_o be_v the_o doctrine_n the_o bible_n and_o here_o be_v the_o practice_n the_o life_n of_o the_o saint_n he_o have_v lead_v this_o life_n many_o year_n when_o a._n b._n meet_v with_o he_o first_o be_v then_o sixty_o year_n of_o age_n and_o continue_v in_o it_o twelve_o year_n more_o this_o holy_a man_n have_v receive_v power_n from_o god_n over_o unclean_a spirit_n and_o cure_v many_o possess_v with_o devil_n a_o lorain_n soldier_n be_v bring_v to_o he_o afflict_v with_o a_o devil_n he_o stay_v with_o he_o for_o some_o month_n and_o find_v himself_o better_a go_v away_o the_o pastor_n exhort_v he_o to_o live_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n lest_o if_o he_o shall_v fall_v again_o into_o sin_n the_o devil_n get_v more_o hold_n of_o he_o than_o former_o but_o he_o give_v up_o himself_o to_o all_o sort_n of_o licentiousness_n the_o devil_n make_v he_o more_o wicked_a than_o before_o and_o among_o other_o thing_n inspire_v he_o with_o such_o a_o hellish_a rage_n against_o the_o pastor_n that_o he_o resolve_v to_o kill_v he_o because_o he_o have_v remonstrate_v to_o he_o that_o his_o life_n be_v evil._n he_o tell_v it_o open_o and_o threaten_v it_o for_o three_o year_n and_o when_o he_o come_v there_o to_o his_o winter-quarter_n they_o advertise_v the_o pastor_n but_o he_o judge_v it_o be_v nothing_o but_o menace_n and_o think_v himself_o unworthy_a to_o die_v the_o death_n of_o a_o martyr_n on_o good-friday_n have_v hear_v the_o confession_n of_o his_o parishioner_n who_o prepare_v to_o communicate_v at_o easter_n and_o all_o be_v go_v out_o as_o he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o confessional_a chair_n and_o prostrate_v before_o the_o high_a altar_n to_o bewail_v their_o sin_n and_o his_o own_o and_o beg_v god_n pardon_n this_o soldier_n lurk_v among_o the_o seat_n with_o his_o carbine_n shoot_v at_o he_o who_o fall_v sudden_o down_o call_v upon_o god_n the_o villain_n perceive_v that_o he_o yet_o breathe_v run_v and_o give_v he_o many_o stroke_n with_o his_o draw_a sword_n in_o the_o head_n till_o he_o cleave_v it_o so_o as_o the_o brain_n fall_v on_o the_o pavement_n some_o child_n who_o have_v stay_v in_o the_o church_n run_v and_o publish_v the_o murder_n he_o be_v carry_v into_o his_o house_n and_o live_v till_o the_o next_o morning_n though_o without_o sense_n the_o soldier_n die_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o justice_n without_o show_v any_o repentance_n a._n b._n sometime_o ask_v he_o about_o his_o great_a austerity_n how_o he_o come_v to_o continue_v they_o be_v so_o old_a since_o to_o be_v well_o please_v to_o god_n there_o be_v nothing_o needful_a but_o to_o love_v he_o he_o reply_v you_o do_v not_o know_v i_o in_o the_o age_n in_o which_o you_o see_v i_o i_o assure_v you_o my_o flesh_n be_v yet_o so_o rebellious_a that_o if_o i_o do_v not_o tame_v it_o and_o make_v it_o suffer_v it_o will_v yet_o rise_v up_o against_o my_o spirit_n it_o will_v rule_v over_o i_o and_o carry_v my_o affection_n to_o thing_n below_o to_o seek_v pleasure_n and_o satisfaction_n in_o they_o which_o will_v certain_o turn_v i_o away_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n i_o must_v therefore_o keep_v it_o in_o subjection_n and_o slavery_n lest_o it_o become_v mistress_n xvii_o but_o to_o return_v to_o a._n b._n the_o pastor_n shut_v she_o up_o in_o a_o little_a apartment_n of_o the_o church_n blatton_n where_o she_o be_v full_a of_o consolation_n see_v herself_o disengage_v from_o all_o earthly_a thing_n and_o retain_v no_o affection_n for_o any_o thing_n but_o a_o perfect_a union_n with_o god_n next_o day_n he_o come_v
stuff_n linen_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o course_v and_o cheap_a to_o these_o her_o lodging_n and_o accommodation_n be_v suitable_a a_o little_a chamber_n a_o few_o old_a chair_n a_o little_a table_n and_o sometime_o a_o piece_n of_o board_n upon_o her_o knee_n to_o write_v upon_o her_o bed_n and_o its_o furnituee_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n yet_o all_o neat_a and_o cleanly_a she_o always_o serve_v herself_o and_o be_v never_o serve_v by_o other_o but_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n but_o most_o ready_a to_o serve_v other_o whether_o poor_a or_o rich_a indifferent_o if_o this_o only_a can_v be_v of_o any_o profit_n to_o the_o soul_n or_o if_o any_o urgent_a necessity_n call_v for_o help_n no_o service_n be_v then_o too_o mean_v for_o she_o and_o to_o spare_v other_o she_o will_v ready_o go_v and_o do_v the_o mean_a office_n even_o to_o wash_v the_o dish_n scour_v the_o pot_n take_v off_o the_o ash_n wash_v the_o linen_n sweep_v and_o clean_a the_o house_n not_o except_v any_o employ_v how_o low_o soever_o provide_v health_n good_a order_n or_o other_o reason_n do_v permit_v it_o 4._o yet_o in_o all_o these_o she_o never_o set_v to_o herself_o any_o particular_a rule_n and_o advise_v her_o friend_n never_o to_o amuse_v themselves_o with_o particular_a rule_n of_o some_o outward_a custom_n of_o humble_a habit_n and_o pious_a countenance_n which_o some_o person_n and_o sect_n do_v observe_v to_o show_v they_o be_v devout_a and_o spiritual_a as_o to_o wear_v their_o apparel_n only_o of_o such_o a_o fashion_n or_o such_o a_o colour_n or_o such_o a_o stuff_n or_o to_o choose_v particular_a meat_n or_o the_o like_a whereby_o they_o distinguish_v themselves_o from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n as_o be_v more_o holy_a and_o more_o virtuous_a than_o they_o this_o she_o say_v beget_v in_o such_o a_o esteem_n of_o themselves_o and_o a_o contempt_n of_o other_o 73._o be_v real_a hypocrisy_n and_o the_o great_a pride_n and_o far_o from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o can_v not_o be_v distinguish_v from_o his_o disciple_n by_o his_o enemy_n when_o they_o come_v to_o apprehend_v he_o without_o a_o sign_n from_o judas_n of_o his_o kiss_v he_o nor_o his_o disciple_n from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n but_o when_o their_o speech_n bewray_v they_o 5._o she_o be_v most_o diligent_a in_o her_o affair_n do_v all_o thing_n both_o for_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n with_o foresight_n and_o good_a order_n without_o let_v any_o thing_n be_v spoil_v but_o put_v all_o to_o some_o good_a use_n be_v always_o well_o employ_v in_o something_o and_o act_v in_o all_o thing_n with_o as_o much_o care_n as_o a_o faithful_a steward_n and_o that_o in_o little_a thing_n as_o well_o as_o great_a she_o will_v never_o undertake_v a_o thing_n hasty_o nor_o go_v about_o with_o it_o precipitation_n not_o to_o have_v it_o soon_o do_v but_o to_o have_v it_o well_o do_v she_o take_v time_n first_o to_o recommend_v it_o to_o god_n and_o be_v once_o persuade_v that_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o his_o will_n she_o do_v it_o leisurely_o but_o with_o perseverance_n as_o god_n she_o say_v do_v all_o his_o work_n doucement_fw-fr &_o fortement_fw-fr this_o she_o say_v be_v good_a both_o for_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o advance_v any_o affair_n better_o than_o too_o much_o vehemence_n 6._o she_o be_v so_o little_o concern_v for_o to_o be_v esteem_v and_o honour_v by_o man_n that_o their_o praise_n and_o reproach_n do_v equal_o touch_v she_o as_o little_a as_o if_o she_o have_v never_o hear_v of_o they_o seek_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n but_o that_o god_n may_v be_v honour_v and_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n save_v her_o business_n and_o her_o thought_n never_o aim_v to_o procure_v honour_n ease_n wealth_n or_o pleasure_n for_o herself_o or_o other_o all_o her_o pleasure_n be_v to_o delight_v in_o god_n in_o her_o solitude_n out_o of_o the_o conversation_n of_o man_n and_o to_o bring_v to_o light_v what_o he_o give_v she_o for_o the_o salvatian_a of_o soul_n this_o make_v her_o stay_n for_o the_o most_o part_n solitary_n in_o her_o chamber_n and_o even_o when_o she_o be_v take_v up_o in_o sow_v or_o any_o other_o work_n she_o love_v still_o to_o be_v alone_o to_o keep_v her_o spirit_n always_o unite_v to_o god_n and_o if_o the_o salvation_n of_o her_o neighbour_n have_v not_o require_v it_o she_o will_v certain_o have_v break_v off_o from_o all_o society_n 7._o though_o solitude_n be_v a_o thousand_o time_n more_o agreeable_a to_o she_o than_o any_o company_n yet_o she_o will_v part_v with_o it_o and_o make_v herself_o as_o it_o be_v a_o state_n of_o continual_a labour_n and_o care_n for_o the_o good_a of_o other_o pure_o for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n so_o entire_a be_v her_o resignation_n unto_o god_n that_o what_o she_o once_o know_v to_o be_v his_o will_n though_o contrary_a to_o her_o inclination_n and_o quiet_a though_o she_o see_v she_o will_v meet_v with_o nothing_o but_o contempt_n reproach_n and_o persecution_n in_o it_o yet_o she_o make_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o all_o to_o follow_v it_o 8._o her_o constant_a rule_n be_v righteousness_n not_o only_o to_o render_v to_o every_o one_o in_o outward_a thing_n what_o appertain_v to_o they_o but_o it_o extend_v to_o all_o thing_n to_o those_o of_o the_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o body_n she_o do_v not_o despise_v the_o good_a that_o be_v in_o her_o enemy_n nor_o excuse_v the_o evil_a that_o be_v in_o her_o friend_n she_o never_o judge_v according_a to_o passion_n but_o according_a to_o equity_n she_o will_v not_o be_v partaker_n of_o other_o man_n sin_n 9_o truth_n be_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o she_o stand_v firm_a and_o to_o which_o she_o do_v adhere_v and_o cleave_v without_o respect_n of_o party_n or_o person_n so_o that_o they_o who_o oppose_v it_o may_v well_o hurt_v themselves_o they_o can_v not_o shake_v she_o and_o though_o all_o the_o learned_a in_o the_o world_n will_v have_v set_v themselves_o against_o she_o she_o will_v have_v regard_v it_o no_o more_o than_o if_o they_o have_v be_v child_n be_v so_o establish_v in_o the_o truth_n so_o free_a be_v she_o from_o all_o humane_a and_o worldly_a respect_n that_o she_o will_v not_o for_o all_o the_o wealth_n friendship_n or_o terror_n of_o the_o world_n omit_v to_o declare_v the_o truth_n if_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n require_v it_o 10._o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v the_o element_n in_o which_o she_o live_v she_o delight_v in_o he_o only_o despise_v all_o earthly_a thing_n for_o he_o and_o adhere_v to_o he_o so_o strong_o that_o she_o will_v do_v nothing_o without_o his_o divine_a will._n 11._o all_o her_o life_n be_v a_o constant_a proof_n of_o her_o charity_n to_o men._n from_o this_o spirit_n she_o employ_v her_o time_n labour_n and_o good_n for_o many_o year_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o a_o multitude_n of_o orphan_n she_o take_v all_o care_n to_o communicate_v to_o the_o world_n even_o against_o man_n will_n and_o endeavour_n to_o the_o contrary_a the_o light_n that_o god_n give_v she_o for_o the_o good_a of_o their_o soul_n denude_v herself_o of_o all_o accommodation_n and_o suffer_v all_o manner_n of_o reproach_n and_o har●ships_n that_o she_o may_v do_v they_o the_o great_a good_a and_o bring_v they_o to_o god_n 12._o and_o such_o be_v her_o perseverance_n and_o fortitude_n in_o this_o that_o all_o the_o scorn_n and_o contempt_n and_o hardship_n and_o persecution_n that_o she_o meet_v with_o in_o a_o course_n of_o many_o year_n do_v not_o shake_v nor_o alter_v she_o 13._o she_o be_v so_o disinteress_v so_o far_o from_o seek_v herself_o that_o she_o will_v never_o seek_v for_o any_o nor_o draw_v any_o body_n over_o unto_o her_o sentiment_n and_o will_v not_o let_v those_o who_o be_v with_o she_o strive_v any_o way_n to_o draw_v in_o other_o even_o though_o they_o by_o this_o way_n have_v be_v able_a to_o bring_v over_o the_o most_o powerful_a and_o the_o most_o learned_a in_o the_o world_n and_o from_o who_o she_o and_o she_o may_v have_v receive_v ●ore_o of_o outward_a advantage_n and_o support_v her_o rule_n for_o herself_o and_o friend_n be_v seek_v none_o let_v god_n operate_v in_o soul_n otherwise_o all_o will_v be_v nothing_o but_o the_o work_v of_o man_n hand_n which_o will_v perish_v as_o she_o have_v no_o other_o butt_n but_o to_o send_v all_o to_o god_n so_o she_o will_v have_v no_o other_o thing_n for_o the_o motive_n and_o principle_n but_o the_o be_v move_v by_o god_n 14._o she_o have_v always_o a_o serenity_n and_o cheerfulness_n of_o spirit_n a_o tranquillity_n of_o mind_n and_o joy_n that_o even_o appear_v outward_o and_o whatever_o emotion_n she_o may_v be_v seize_v with_o
do_v it_o not_o deserve_v that_o it_o love_v he_o he_o far_o oblige_v it_o by_o more_o powerful_a mean_n for_o that_o he_o may_v make_v they_o see_v that_o his_o delight_n be_v to_o be_v with_o the_o child_n of_o man_n he_o become_v man_n visible_a and_o sensible_a as_o themselves_o not_o be_v satisfy_v to_o have_v make_v man_n after_o his_o image_n and_o likeness_n but_o god_n be_v make_v after_o the_o image_n and_o likeness_n of_o man_n yea_o he_o become_v true_o man_n to_o teach_v they_o how_o to_o love_v he_o by_o material_a word_n and_o deed_n conformable_a to_o their_o humane_a capacity_n vii_o annihilation_n can_v god_n testify_v more_o love_n for_o man_n than_o to_o abase_v himself_o yea_o to_o annihilate_v himself_o to_o speak_v according_a to_o our_o language_n and_o to_o clothe_v himself_o with_o humane_a nature_n what_o judgement_n can_v conceive_v great_a testimony_n of_o his_o love_n or_o what_o mean_n can_v be_v fall_v upon_o more_o powerful_o to_o oblige_v man_n to_o love_v he_o than_o to_o become_v like_a to_o man_n in_o nature_n to_o become_v his_o equal_a in_o condition_n not_o prefer_v himself_o to_o the_o mean_a man_n to_o converse_v and_o be_v familiar_a with_o they_o as_o their_o brother_n and_o companion_n yea_o he_o subject_n himself_o unto_o and_o obeys_z man_n that_o he_o may_v gain_v his_o friendship_n he_o serve_v he_o even_o to_o the_o wash_n of_o his_o foot_n and_o though_o man_n offend_v he_o he_o prevent_v he_o always_o with_o friendship_n le_fw-fr we_o a_o judas_n kiss_v he_o who_o contrive_v his_o death_n and_o at_o the_o time_n he_o come_v to_o deliver_v he_o up_o to_o his_o enemy_n he_o even_o call_v he_o his_o friend_n viii_o prophet_n and_o for_o a_o evidence_n that_o he_o make_v man_n his_o friend_n he_o declare_v unto_o he_o his_o secret_n and_o all_o that_o he_o learn_v from_o his_o father_n and_o all_o this_o to_o engage_v man_n to_o a_o reciprocal_a love_n he_o eat_v and_o drink_v with_o they_o draw_v they_o by_o his_o sweet_a conversation_n teach_v they_o familiar_o all_o the_o necessary_a mean_n to_o love_v he_o give_v they_o a_o law_n all_o of_o love_n which_o contain_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n all_o his_o gospel_n contain_v nothing_o but_o the_o true_a mean_n to_o fulfil_v this_o law_n of_o love_n he_o so_o earnest_o press_v this_o love_n that_o he_o threaten_v with_o eternal_a damnation_n if_o we_o do_v not_o love_v he_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n with_o all_o our_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o our_o strength_n can_v he_o express_v more_o powerful_o the_o desire_n he_o have_v that_o man_n love_v he_o while_o he_o draw_v he_o even_o by_o force_n to_o his_o love_n ix_o priest_n and_o to_o make_v this_o force_n altogether_o lovely_a he_o charge_v himself_o with_o the_o burden_n of_o man_n sin_n resolve_v out_o of_o the_o love_n he_o bear_v he_o to_o suffer_v in_o his_o own_o body_n the_o punishment_n due_a for_o they_o he_o suffer_v hunger_n thirst_v weariness_n travel_v through_o so_o many_o place_n to_o seek_v man_n and_o to_o help_v he_o in_o his_o penitence_n that_o he_o may_v have_v no_o other_o care_n out_o to_o love_v he_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o man_n shall_v not_o acknowledge_v such_o a_o love_n be_v he_o so_o unnatural_a as_o not_o to_o love_v such_o a_o benefactor_n who_o oblige_v he_o by_o so_o many_o so_o painful_a proof_n of_o his_o love_n that_o they_o seem_v to_o exceed_v the_o bound_n of_o reason_n x._o enemy_n who_o ever_o see_v love_n arrive_v to_o such_o a_o excess_n of_o goodwill_n for_o the_o person_n belove_v for_o a_o god_n to_o debase_v himself_o to_o subject_v himself_o and_o to_o suffer_v for_o his_o creature_n that_o which_o no_o body_n will_v do_v for_o his_o equal_a and_o it_o will_v be_v no_o small_a love_n for_o one_o to_o give_v his_o life_n for_o his_o friend_n which_o jesus_n christ_n give_v for_o man_n who_o be_v his_o enemy_n have_v overcome_v his_o malice_n by_o the_o excess_n of_o his_o love_n and_o the_o more_o that_o man_n be_v transport_v to_o deal_v hardly_o with_o he_o he_o be_v lead_v the_o more_o to_o love_v he_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n voluntary_o the_o more_o to_o oblige_v he_o by_o the_o consideration_n of_o such_o a_o love_n that_o surpass_v all_o understanding_n that_o a_o god_n shall_v be_v incline_v to_o love_v a_o worm_n of_o the_o earth_n of_o which_o he_o have_v no_o need_n and_o which_o be_v lead_v even_o to_o outrage_n and_o offend_v he_o instead_o of_o be_v incline_v to_o love_v he_o xi_o love_n ingrate_a creature_n will_v not_o thou_o yield_v to_o this_o love_n cruel_a to_o thyself_o enemy_n of_o thy_o own_o good_a will_v not_o thou_o bow_v under_o this_o yoke_n which_o be_v so_o gentle_a and_o lovely_a it_o be_v captivity_n be_v liberty_n its_o service_n be_v a_o kingdom_n its_o pain_n be_v delight_n its_o labour_n be_v repose_v its_o grief_n be_v contentment_n this_o love_n satisfy_v the_o soul_n fill_v it_o with_o all_o happiness_n comfort_v it_o and_o adorn_v it_o keep_v it_o always_o cheerful_a with_o its_o beloved_n nothing_o can_v offend_v it_o what_o happiness_n what_o joy_n what_o peace_n what_o delight_v to_o the_o soul_n that_o possess_v this_o love_n it_o fear_v nothing_o it_o hope_n for_o nothing_o it_o seek_v nothing_o it_o find_v nothing_o lovely_a without_o this_o love_n xii_o riches_n how_o blind_a and_o ignorant_a be_v he_o who_o love_v the_o wealth_n the_o honour_n and_o the_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n he_o be_v never_o content_a nor_o satisfy_v for_o riches_n bring_v along_o with_o they_o a_o thousand_o care_n and_o disquiet_v with_o a_o unsatiable_a thirst_n which_o fasten_v the_o soul_n to_o earth_n and_o to_o metal_n and_o turn_v it_o away_o from_o god_n honour_n be_v yet_o more_o vain_a than_o riches_n honour_n for_o they_o be_v nothing_o but_o fantastical_a and_o imaginary_a which_o give_v nothing_o to_o the_o soul_n that_o love_v they_o but_o a_o empty_a swell_a of_o pride_n which_o make_v the_o heart_n break_v at_o the_o least_o change_n of_o fortune_n which_o vex_v and_o torment_v they_o continual_o with_o the_o fear_n and_o care_n of_o lose_v they_o and_o though_o they_o do_v possess_v they_o lawful_o and_o secure_o yet_o they_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o smoke_n of_o vanity_n since_o we_o be_v nothing_o and_o all_o they_o who_o honour_v we_o be_v equal_o nothing_o what_o folly_n be_v it_o to_o look_v for_o glory_n from_o all_o these_o nothing_o and_o to_o love_v honour_n so_o vain_a and_o of_o so_o short_a continuance_n pleasure_n pleasure_n such_o as_o they_o may_v be_v give_v very_o little_a satisfaction_n to_o man_n in_o general_n because_o they_o be_v of_o so_o short_a continuance_n in_o particular_a for_o that_o they_o be_v so_o vile_a and_o earthly_a unworthy_a of_o the_o nobleness_n of_o our_o soul_n which_o be_v divine_a and_o spiritual_a for_o to_o take_v pleasure_n to_o eat_v and_o drink_v be_v to_o level_v ourselves_o in_o this_o point_n with_o the_o beast_n and_o often_o to_o hurt_v both_o soul_n and_o body_n see_v these_o pleasure_n do_v sometime_o breed_v excess_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o health_n indispose_v both_o body_n and_o mind_n which_o pay_v very_o dear_a for_o the_o pleasure_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o have_v in_o meat_n and_o drink_n all_o the_o other_o pleasure_n of_o the_o body_n be_v always_o insatiable_a to_o he_o who_o will_v please_v his_o five_o sense_n the_o eye_n will_v never_o be_v satisfy_v with_o see_v the_o ear_n with_o hear_v and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n if_o reason_n do_v not_o govern_v all_o they_o will_v still_o importune_v we_o yea_o become_v insolent_a and_o unsatisfiable_a to_o love_v play_n be_v loss_n of_o time_n to_o love_v hunt_v be_v weariness_n to_o love_v company_n be_v disquiet_a the_o more_o we_o will_v oblige_v they_o the_o more_o they_o be_v dissatisfy_v and_o what_o shall_v we_o have_v after_o have_v satisfy_v all_o our_o sense_n and_o give_v to_o our_o body_n all_o the_o pleasure_n that_o it_o desire_n nothing_o but_o weariness_n and_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n which_o will_v torment_v the_o soul_n especial_o at_o death_n we_o may_v lawful_o use_v these_o thing_n but_o not_o love_v they_o for_o they_o be_v no_o wise_a worthy_a of_o our_o love_n xiii_o god_n there_o be_v nothing_o lovely_a and_o that_o can_v satisfy_v our_o soul_n but_o god_n alone_o neither_o be_v it_o create_v for_o any_o other_o end_v but_o to_o love_v its_o god_n and_o to_o cleave_v to_o he_o only_o all_o other_o good_n be_v false_a and_o deceitful_a since_o we_o can_v live_v without_o love_n why_o do_v we_o not_o love_v this_o god_n who_o be_v alone_o lovely_a so_o much_o the_o rather_o that_o he_o desire_v it_o that_o he_o have_v oblige_v we_o to_o it_o by_o
religion_n have_v to_o one_o another_o this_o then_o be_v certain_o a_o remarkable_a property_n of_o the_o write_n of_o a._n b._n that_o they_o give_v so_o distinct_a a_o view_n of_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o several_a part_n and_o duty_n of_o christianity_n to_o one_o another_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a how_o some_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o end_n and_o other_o of_o the_o mean_n some_o of_o which_o be_v so_o absolute_o necessary_a in_o man_n present_a state_n that_o without_o they_o he_o can_v attain_v the_o end_n they_o make_v appear_v that_o the_o great_a end_n of_o christianity_n be_v to_o bring_v we_o back_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o that_o we_o can_v never_o recover_v this_o without_o the_o mortify_n of_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o that_o this_o can_v be_v effect_v but_o by_o obey_v the_o doctrine_n and_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o jesus_n christ_n so_o that_o his_o command_n be_v all_o the_o necessary_a help_n of_o our_o frailty_n teach_v we_o what_o way_n to_o overcome_v our_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o to_o return_v to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n for_o the_o end_n of_o the_o commandment_n be_v charity_n the_o gospel-law_n teach_v man_n poverty_n of_o spirit_n to_o show_v man_n that_o covetousness_n have_v withdraw_v he_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o that_o he_o can_v recover_v it_o without_o cease_v to_o covet_v earthly_a good_n and_o it_o teach_v man_n to_o be_v humble_a in_o heart_n and_o to_o choose_v the_o low_a place_n because_o they_o have_v lose_v the_o love_n of_o god_n by_o love_v themselves_o and_o think_v themselves_o worthy_a of_o honour_n and_o glory_n while_o they_o merit_v nothing_o but_o contempt_n and_o confusion_n jesus_n christ_n choose_v a_o poor_a and_o mean_a state_n in_o the_o world_n live_v in_o hardship_n and_o unease_v in_o reproach_n and_o contempt_n and_o never_o do_v his_o own_o will_n but_o the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o send_v he_o to_o show_v we_o what_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o withdraw_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o what_o be_v the_o mean_v we_o must_v use_v to_o overcome_v they_o xviii_o nature_n 3._o the_o write_n of_o a._n b._n do_v give_v we_o most_o lovely_a representation_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n such_o as_o may_v serve_v to_o inflame_v our_o soul_n with_o love_n and_o wonder_n when_o we_o think_v on_o the_o depth_n and_o height_n and_o breadth_n and_o length_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n jesus_n which_o pass_v all_o knowledge_n they_o show_v we_o that_o god_n very_a nature_n be_v love_n that_o there_o be_v none_o good_a but_o god_n that_o no_o kind_n of_o evil_n come_v from_o he_o evang._n but_o all_o good_a that_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o love_n and_o goodness_n that_o make_v he_o create_v man_n so_o wonderful_a a_o creature_n that_o he_o may_v communicate_v himself_o to_o he_o and_o dwell_v in_o he_o by_o his_o light_n and_o love_n and_o that_o he_o may_v oblige_v he_o by_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o magnificence_n make_v a_o world_n of_o beautiful_a creature_n to_o attend_v he_o and_o to_o complete_a his_o happiness_n and_o contentment_n will_v needs_o become_v like_a to_o he_o as_o he_o have_v at_o first_o form_v man_n after_o his_o own_o image_n and_o so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o design_v that_o man_n shall_v destroy_v himself_o that_o he_o use_v all_o mean_n to_o prevent_v it_o etc._n and_o to_o keep_v he_o from_o abuse_v the_o great_a natural_a gift_n he_o can_v bestow_v upon_o he_o liberty_n of_o will_n and_o which_o he_o can_v not_o in_o justice_n take_v back_o again_o for_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n that_o man_n baseness_n and_o fall_n do_v not_o alter_v god_n love_n but_o he_o resolve_v to_o recover_v he_o again_o and_o continue_v unalterable_o his_o first_o design_n of_o take_v his_o delight_n with_o he_o that_o he_o accept_v of_o the_o intercession_n and_o mediation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o that_o end_n and_o allow_v man_n grace_n and_o a_o time_n and_o mean_n of_o penitence_n that_o the_o very_a evil_n that_o come_v upon_o man_n and_o upon_o the_o creature_n by_o his_o sin_n he_o order_v they_o all_o so_o as_o that_o they_o may_v tend_v to_o his_o good_a and_o his_o recovery_n thrust_v he_o out_o of_o a_o delightful_a paradise_n into_o a_o earth_n curse_v for_o his_o sake_n and_o bring_v forth_o throns_n and_o thistle_n lest_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o first_o shall_v now_o still_o bewitch_v his_o heart_n the_o more_o and_o that_o the_o misery_n and_o vexation_n of_o the_o last_o may_v give_v he_o occasion_n for_o penitence_n and_o make_v he_o return_v to_o his_o god_n that_o god_n have_v not_o forsake_v man_n but_o man_n have_v forsake_v his_o god_n that_o god_n by_o all_o his_o work_n and_o by_o his_o operation_n in_o man_n give_v he_o all_o sort_n of_o occasion_n to_o love_v he_o that_o he_o be_v not_o content_a to_o send_v we_o his_o servant_n and_o prophet_n to_o enlighten_v we_o but_o he_o come_v himself_o and_o become_v in_o all_o thing_n like_v to_o we_o yet_o without_o sin_n that_o he_o may_v redeem_v and_o save_v we_o that_o god_n tempt_v no_o man_n but_o every_o man_n be_v draw_v away_o of_o his_o own_o lust_n that_o he_o damn_v no_o man_n for_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o good_a and_o can_v do_v no_o evil_a and_o the_o damnation_n of_o a_o soul_n be_v the_o great_a evil_n in_o the_o world_n that_o he_o do_v not_o permit_v sin_n but_o permit_v man_n to_o make_v use_n of_o his_o freewill_n which_o be_v the_o great_a treasure_n he_o can_v receive_v it_o be_v not_o just_a for_o god_n to_o take_v it_o back_o again_o and_o if_o man_n abuse_v it_o it_o be_v for_o himself_o so_o he_o may_v do_v with_o his_o hand_n and_o tongue_n which_o be_v give_v he_o for_o excellent_a use_n that_o as_o god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o any_o sin_n any_o moral_a evil_n neither_o by_o influence_n nor_o by_o decree_n nor_o by_o permission_n but_o it_o proceed_v whole_o from_o man_n and_o devil_n by_o the_o ill_a use_n of_o the_o liberty_n and_o freewill_n that_o god_n give_v they_o so_o neither_o be_v he_o the_o author_n of_o any_o natural_a evil_n or_o malignity_n that_o be_v in_o the_o creature_n he_o have_v create_v all_o good_a and_o perfect_a but_o sin_n and_o the_o self_n will_v of_o man_n have_v bring_v a_o malignity_n into_o all_o thing_n and_o therefore_o it_o belong_v to_o man_n as_o be_v the_o work_v of_o his_o hand_n that_o god_n let_v this_o malignity_n continue_v now_o in_o this_o time_n of_o trial_n to_o withdraw_v man_n from_o the_o love_n of_o the_o creature_n that_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n he_o will_v deliver_v all_o his_o creature_n from_o the_o malignity_n contract_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n and_o since_o it_o be_v just_a to_o render_v to_o each_o one_o what_o belong_v to_o he_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o who_o will_v not_o return_v to_o a_o dependence_n upon_o their_o god_n have_v for_o their_o portion_n this_o malignity_n of_o all_o the_o creature_n to_o all_o eternity_n as_o be_v the_o work_n of_o their_o own_o hand_n that_o in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n consist_v all_o good_a and_o all_o happiness_n and_o in_o the_o turn_n away_o from_o that_o love_n all_o evil_a and_o all_o misery_n which_o man_n be_v not_o now_o so_o sensible_a of_o because_o of_o the_o superficial_a and_o transient_a delight_n with_o which_o the_o creature_n do_v amuse_v and_o tickle_v they_o but_o upon_o the_o removal_n of_o that_o they_o shall_v feel_v it_o to_o all_o eternity_n god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o death_n but_o by_o one_o man_n sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n and_o death_n by_o sin_n and_o death_n have_v pass_v over_o all_o because_o all_o have_v sin_v 15_o it_o be_v say_v st._n augustine_n god_n alone_o the_o only_a truth_n the_o only_a salvation_n of_o all_o and_o the_o first_o and_o supreme_a essence_n from_o who_o every_o thing_n be_v what_o it_o be_v in_o so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v for_o in_o so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v what_o it_o be_v it_o be_v good_a and_o therefore_o death_n be_v not_o from_o god_n for_o god_n do_v not_o make_v death_n neither_o do_v he_o take_v pleasure_n in_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o live_n for_o the_o supreme_a essence_n make_v every_o thing_n to_o be_v what_o it_o be_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v the_o essence_n but_o death_n constrain_v that_o which_o die_v not_o to_o be_v in_o so_o far_o as_o it_o die_v for_o if_o these_o thing_n which_o die_v shall_v die_v altogether_o undoubted_o they_o will_v come_v to_o nothing_o but_o by_o how_o much_o less_o they_o partake_v of_o essence_n by_o so_o much_o they_o die_v now_o a_o body_n be_v less_o
they_o will_v be_v false_a and_o nothing_o but_o chimera_n of_o our_o own_o imagination_n the_o analogy_n hold_v in_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a thing_n as_o well_o as_o in_o bodily_a and_o material_a one_o there_o be_v a_o solid_a substantial_a live_a and_o fruitful_a knowledge_n of_o they_o when_o god_n communicate_v himself_o to_o the_o soul_n and_o bring_v along_o with_o he_o his_o love_n and_o light_n and_o joy_n and_o peace_n these_o be_v all_o feel_v by_o it_o as_o we_o feel_v the_o light_n when_o it_o shine_v into_o our_o eye_n this_o knowledge_n be_v to_o be_v have_v only_o from_o god_n as_o the_o sun_n and_o light_n can_v be_v see_v only_o by_o themselves_o for_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n know_v no_o man_n 11_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n though_o the_o sun_n shine_v never_o so_o bright_o yet_o if_o we_o be_v shut_v up_o with_o thick_a wall_n round_o about_o we_o or_o if_o our_o eye_n be_v blind_v we_o can_v behold_v the_o light_n this_o be_v the_o state_n we_o be_v bear_v in_o 14._o in_o corrupt_a nature_n the_o light_n shine_v in_o darkness_n and_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v it_o not_o the_o natural_a man_n perceive_v not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o god_n but_o they_o be_v foolishness_n to_o he_o neither_o can_v he_o know_v they_o because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v those_o impediment_n and_o distemper_n must_v be_v remove_v if_o we_o will_v know_v god_n aright_o and_o therefore_o the_o light_n have_v embody_v himself_o and_o the_o word_n become_v flesh_n and_o dwell_v among_o we_o and_o become_v in_o all_o thing_n like_v to_o we_o except_o sin_n that_o he_o may_v show_v we_o how_o to_o come_v to_o god_n not_o by_o much_o read_n nor_o great_a learning_n nor_o high_a speculation_n but_o by_o become_v like_o little_a child_n by_o simplicity_n and_o singleness_n of_o heart_n by_o humility_n and_o prayer_n by_o take_v off_o our_o desire_n from_o all_o other_o thing_n 12._o and_o turn_v our_o soul_n to_o god_n bless_a be_v the_o pure_a in_o heart_n for_o they_o shall_v see_v god_n if_o thy_o eye_n be_v single_a thy_o whole_a body_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o light_n the_o meek_a will_v he_o teach_v his_o way_n i_o be_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n say_v christ_n he_o that_o follow_v i_o shall_v not_o walk_v in_o darkness_n but_o shall_v have_v the_o light_n of_o life_n the_o divine_a knowledge_n that_o be_v thus_o obtain_v be_v solid_a and_o live_a it_o satisfy_v the_o heart_n it_o inflame_v it_o with_o charity_n the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n 17._o this_o wisdom_n that_o be_v from_o above_o be_v pure_a and_o peaceable_a gentle_a and_o easy_a to_o be_v entreat_v full_a of_o mercy_n and_o good_a fruit_n without_o partiality_n and_o without_o hypocrisy_n there_o be_v another_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a thing_n which_o be_v only_o superficial_a and_o speculative_a and_o consist_v in_o the_o form_n to_o ourselves_o the_o picture_n of_o divine_a thing_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o and_o employ_v our_o thought_n and_o faculty_n about_o these_o if_o we_o do_v this_o only_a in_o so_o far_o as_o it_o may_v be_v helpful_a to_o excite_v we_o to_o the_o other_o and_o to_o labour_v after_o those_o disposition_n that_o may_v make_v we_o meet_v for_o it_o it_o may_v be_v a_o good_a handmaid_n and_o subservient_fw-fr to_o it_o but_o if_o we_o make_v it_o our_o study_n and_o employ_v our_o time_n and_o faculty_n about_o it_o we_o do_v as_o foolish_o as_o they_o who_o be_v hungry_a and_o thirsty_a and_o deprive_v of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n shall_v with_o the_o dim_a light_n of_o a_o candle_n go_v into_o a_o gallery_n and_o view_v the_o picture_n of_o the_o light_n and_o sun_n and_o of_o all_o sort_n of_o delicate_a wine_n and_o meat_n and_o shall_v draw_v a_o great_a many_o of_o these_o themselves_o each_o club_n contend_v that_o their_o picture_n be_v the_o true_a quarrel_v and_o fight_v about_o they_o and_o and_o force_v one_o another_o to_o assent_v and_o swear_v to_o their_o belief_n and_o opinion_n of_o they_o and_o hate_v such_o as_o differ_v from_o they_o and_o be_v so_o craze_v in_o their_o imagination_n as_o to_o fancy_n they_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v and_o enjoy_v the_o light_n but_o when_o they_o awake_v their_o soul_n be_v empty_a 3._o this_o be_v that_o theology_n which_o have_v overspread_v the_o christian_a world_n for_o the_o cultivate_a of_o which_o seminary_n be_v erect_v master_n and_o professor_n set_v apart_o the_o youth_n train_v up_o to_o handle_v their_o weapon_n and_o to_o argue_v pro_n and_o con_n upon_o every_o head_n the_o very_a catechism_n fill_v with_o the_o nice_a speculation_n of_o the_o respective_a party_n and_o the_o people_n to_o con_v their_o hard_a word_n and_o to_o think_v themselves_o mighty_a know_a in_o religion_n in_o this_o thousand_o of_o volume_n be_v write_v and_o the_o opinion_n and_o picture_n draw_v by_o former_a age_n inquire_v into_o and_o curious_a criticism_n make_v about_o every_o line_n in_o the_o study_n of_o which_o divine_v employ_v their_o time_n and_o talent_n in_o this_o the_o preacher_n multiply_v sermon_n give_v stone_n for_o bread_n and_o the_o people_n have_v itch_a ear_n ever_o learning_n and_o never_o be_v able_a to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n like_o physician_n and_o patient_n that_o shall_v love_v to_o talk_v and_o hear_v respective_o elaborate_a discourse_n about_o receipt_n of_o physic_n the_o receipt_n be_v plain_a enough_o of_o themselves_o without_o ever_o apply_v effectual_o to_o use_v they_o in_o this_o man_n employ_v their_o eal_n to_o maintain_v their_o opinion_n to_o form_n and_o foster_v sect_n and_o schism_n to_o multiply_v debate_n and_o controversy_n to_o hate_v and_o malign_v those_o that_o differ_v from_o they_o to_o raise_v tumult_n and_o rabble_n to_o animate_v prince_n against_o their_o people_n and_o people_n against_o their_o prince_n and_o to_o fill_v the_o world_n with_o blood_n and_o confusion_n now_o all_o the_o write_n of_o a._n b._n tend_v to_o lead_v man_n to_o that_o theology_n and_o divine_a wisdom_n that_o be_v to_o be_v have_v only_o by_o deep_a humilty_n of_o heart_n and_o poverty_n of_o spirit_n to_o be_v learn_v only_o in_o the_o school_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o deny_v of_o themselves_o and_o follow_v of_o he_o and_o to_o take_v they_o of_o from_o that_o false_a and_o superficial_a knowledge_n of_o divine_a thing_n which_o stand_v in_o a_o perfect_a opposition_n to_o the_o other_o it_o make_v the_o mind_n incapable_a of_o be_v enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n it_o keep_v it_o in_o a_o constant_a amusement_n it_o be_v that_o knowledge_n that_o puff_v up_o and_o make_v we_o think_v we_o know_v something_o 15._o when_o we_o know_v nothing_o as_o we_o ought_v to_o know_v but_o if_o any_o man_n love_n god_n the_o same_o be_v know_v of_o he_o it_o be_v the_o wisdom_n that_o descend_v not_o above_o but_o be_v earthly_a sensual_a and_o devilish_a work_v envy_n strife_n and_o confusion_n and_o every_o evil_a work_n it_o be_v of_o this_o 14._o that_o god_n threaten_v he_o will_v destroy_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o wise_a and_o bring_v to_o nought_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o prudent_a 27._o therefore_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a he_o choose_v for_o his_o aposle_n simple_a illiterate_a man_n and_o when_o the_o learned_a come_v to_o he_o he_o despise_v their_o wisdom_n visiere_n send_v paul_n to_o school_n as_o a_o ignorant_a to_o learn_v of_o ananias_n what_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o when_o nicodemus_n come_v to_o be_v his_o disciple_n the_o only_a learned_a man_n that_o come_v to_o be_v convert_v by_o he_o he_o declare_v to_o he_o with_o asseveration_n that_o unless_o he_o be_v convert_v and_o become_v as_o a_o little_a child_n he_o can_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o make_v he_o understand_v that_o his_o learning_n and_o wisdom_n be_v a_o hindrance_n to_o it_o that_o he_o must_v turn_v away_o from_o it_o to_o embrace_v the_o simplicity_n of_o a_o child_n what_o he_o say_v to_o he_o he_o say_v to_o all_o the_o learned_a that_o shall_v ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n nicodemus_n be_v already_o turn_v from_o evil_a to_o good_a when_o he_o offer_v to_o be_v his_o disciple_n but_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o jesus_n christ_n declare_v to_o he_o that_o notwithstanding_o of_o this_o he_o shall_v not_o enter_v there_o unless_o he_o become_v as_o a_o little_a child_n learn_v the_o simplicity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o detest_a the_o wisdom_n and_o learning_n of_o men._n if_o the_o wisdom_n and_o study_n of_o man_n be_v not_o hindrance_n to_o they_o why_o will_v he_o have_v they_o simple_a as_o child_n the_o same_o spirit_n
do_v from_o a_o fountain_n she_o need_v not_o it_o seem_v the_o bucket_n of_o study_n and_o meditation_n wherewith_o to_o draw_v out_o of_o the_o break_a cistern_n of_o other_o but_o she_o have_v within_o she_o a_o fountain_n of_o live_a water_n still_o spring_v up_o to_o everlasting_a life_n as_o this_o be_v attest_v by_o those_o who_o be_v of_o her_o particular_a acquaintance_n and_o all_o her_o manuscript_n be_v still_o extant_a write_v with_o her_o own_o hand_n so_o a_o particular_a account_n be_v give_v give_v of_o this_o by_o mr._n francken_n merchant_n at_o amsterdam_n in_o his_o testimony_n concern_v she_o etc._n where_o among_o other_o thing_n he_o tell_v that_o a_o learned_a man_n of_o amsterdam_n a_o doctor_n of_o law_n say_v to_o he_o one_o day_n that_o he_o can_v not_o believe_v but_o it_o be_v some_o learned_a man_n who_o have_v write_v these_o letter_n and_o publish_v they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a._n b._n as_o not_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v know_v and_o mr._n francken_n assure_v he_o of_o the_o contrary_a but_o however_o he_o not_o have_v have_v long_o time_n to_o converse_v with_o she_o he_o will_v take_v care_n to_o inform_v himself_o more_o narrow_o so_o as_o to_o be_v able_a to_o convince_v he_o as_o it_o fall_v out_o for_o some_o time_n since_o after_o he_o have_v tell_v he_o he_o have_v often_o find_v she_o in_o her_o little_a chamber_n with_o a_o piece_n of_o deal_n board_n on_o her_o knee_n write_v without_o any_o other_o thing_n but_o the_o paper_n on_o which_o she_o write_v and_o the_o pen_n and_o ink_n which_o she_o make_v use_v of_o and_o she_o leave_v off_o to_o write_v upon_o her_o discover_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o room_n and_o because_o she_o never_o write_v but_o with_o attention_n to_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n in_o the_o inward_a silence_n and_o recollection_n of_o her_o spirit_n he_o will_v take_v up_o the_o paper_n with_o her_o permission_n to_o read_v it_o and_o find_v it_o be_v write_v so_o swift_o that_o there_o will_v be_v yet_o ten_o or_o twelve_o line_n fresh_a and_o wet_a have_v make_v this_o trial_n of_o it_o his_o friend_n he_o say_v be_v persuade_v of_o it_o as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v see_v it_o himself_o have_v full_a confidence_n in_o his_o sincerity_n from_o long_a experience_n and_o familiarity_n xxx_o practice_n 15._o that_o which_o ought_v great_o to_o recommend_v her_o write_n to_o we_o be_v the_o conformity_n of_o her_o life_n and_o practice_n it_o be_v the_o general_a complaint_n concern_v those_o who_o recommend_v virtue_n and_o a_o true_o christian_a life_n to_o other_o that_o they_o do_v not_o practise_v it_o themselves_o that_o they_o speak_v by_o one_o principle_n and_o live_v by_o another_o and_o so_o their_o word_n have_v little_a force_n b._n and_o they_o destroy_v christianity_n one_o way_n more_o than_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o build_v it_o up_o another_o i_o know_v some_o have_v make_v a_o ill_a use_n of_o the_o eulogy_n which_o have_v be_v give_v of_o her_o life_n and_o spirit_n by_o those_o who_o be_v eye-witness_n of_o all_o like_o spider_n suck_a poison_n from_o the_o flower_n where_o the_o bee_n gather_v honey_n they_o exaggerate_v some_o of_o their_o expression_n far_o beyond_o the_o intent_n of_o they_o and_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o those_o who_o be_v live_v witness_n of_o her_o life_n they_o some_o eighteen_o year_n after_o she_o be_v dead_a will_v needs_o draw_v a_o picture_n of_o she_o that_o may_v represent_v she_o very_o ugly_a with_o what_o equity_n and_o candour_n will_v appear_v in_o its_o due_a place_n however_o any_o who_o shall_v read_v impartial_o the_o story_n of_o her_o life_n and_o the_o testimony_n give_v of_o she_o throughout_o all_o the_o period_n of_o it_o ●_o will_v conceive_v better_a thought_n of_o she_o than_o what_o the_o new_a narrative_n will_v give_v of_o they_o they_o will_v see_v that_o she_o live_v constant_o as_o one_o travel_v towards_o eternity_n and_o therein_o study_v in_o all_o thing_n to_o conform_v her_o life_n to_o that_o of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o these_o and_o suchlike_a instance_n she_o converse_v always_o with_o god_n and_o no_o more_o with_o man_n than_o her_o duty_n and_o charity_n require_v she_o lead_v a_o life_n of_o continual_a penitence_n mortify_v her_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o never_o gratify_v her_o sensual_a appetite_n in_o any_o thing_n though_o she_o may_v have_v enjoy_v the_o pleasure_n of_o her_o sense_n the_o delight_n of_o her_o taste_n and_o of_o her_o other_o sense_n yet_o she_o voluntary_o deprive_v herself_o of_o they_o to_o please_v god_n though_o she_o have_v lawful_o acquire_v riches_n yet_o will_v never_o use_v they_o but_o for_o pure_a necessity_n though_o she_o may_v have_v be_v convenient_o serve_v and_o honour_v according_a to_o her_o condition_n yet_o she_o despise_v these_o honour_n and_o service_n to_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n love_v rather_o to_o live_v unknown_a and_o serve_v herself_o than_o to_o be_v serve_v there_o be_v nothing_o observe_v in_o her_o action_n contrary_a to_o the_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n of_o god_n but_o they_o appear_v still_o to_o be_v accompany_v with_o those_o three_o quality_n derive_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n she_o never_o recommend_v to_o any_o the_o practice_n of_o a_o virtue_n which_o she_o do_v not_o most_o exemplary_o practise_v herself_o she_o be_v most_o humble_a and_o selfdenied_n always_o ready_a to_o serve_v other_o rather_o than_o be_v serve_v by_o they_o and_o to_o take_v to_o herself_o the_o mean_a and_o the_o least_o of_o every_o thing_n she_o do_v not_o affect_v to_o be_v think_v humble_a by_o humble_a word_n gesture_n habit_n etc._n etc._n nor_o do_v she_o distinguish_v herself_o from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n by_o any_o singular_a indifferent_a thing_n but_o as_o to_o habit_n diet_n etc._n etc._n conform_v herself_o to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o place_n where_o she_o happen_v to_o be_v so_o great_a be_v her_o charity_n that_o she_o bring_v up_o some_o hundred_o of_o girl_n maintain_v fifty_o of_o they_o at_o a_o time_n for_o the_o space_n of_o seven_o year_n on_o her_o own_o charge_n what_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o founder_n be_v only_o for_o ten_o employ_v her_o time_n wealth_n strength_n of_o body_n and_o mind_n in_o training_n they_o up_o in_o all_o virtuous_a exercise_n and_o distinguish_v herself_o in_o nothing_o from_o they_o as_o to_o diet_n bread_n apparel_n etc._n etc._n such_o be_v her_o love_n to_o man_n soul_n that_o she_o spare_v nothing_o to_o persuade_v they_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o to_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n and_o employ_v her_o time_n and_o wealth_n in_o writing_n and_o publish_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n for_o that_o end_n she_o suffer_v patient_o all_o manner_n of_o reproach_n and_o persecution_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o jesus_n christ_n she_o have_v a_o invincible_a firmness_n and_o constancy_n in_o what_o be_v truth_n nothing_o can_v shake_v or_o alter_v she_o she_o do_v nothing_o to_o please_v man_n she_o have_v a_o constant_a equality_n of_o mind_n in_o all_o condition_n she_o discover_v a_o wonderful_a prudence_n on_o all_o occasion_n let_v any_o body_n but_o read_v the_o testimony_n give_v of_o she_o by_o those_o who_o know_v she_o in_o her_o youth_n in_o her_o old_a age_n and_o in_o all_o state_n of_o her_o life_n as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o in_o recucil_n des_fw-fr temoignage_n and_o particular_o that_o of_o mr._n francken_n merchant_n of_o amsterdam_n and_o they_o will_v see_v how_o close_o she_o be_v a_o follower_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o humility_n and_o poverty_n of_o spirit_n in_o a_o contempt_n of_o all_o earthly_a thing_n in_o a_o life_n of_o labour_n and_o penitence_n and_o in_o the_o true_a love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n now_o write_n who_o substance_n and_o essence_n contain_v such_o excellent_a truth_n as_o those_o i_o have_v mention_v in_o the_o account_n of_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n and_o which_o have_v such_o remarkable_a quality_n and_o pen_v by_o one_o who_o live_v so_o herself_o ought_v certain_o to_o meet_v with_o some_o regard_n and_o not_o to_o be_v immediate_o throw_v away_o and_o people_n fright_v from_o look_v into_o they_o because_o there_o be_v in_o they_o some_o sentiment_n which_o do_v not_o relish_v and_o seem_v to_o we_o extravagant_a xxxi_o sentiment_n but_o perhaps_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o those_o doctrine_n which_o she_o call_v accessory_n may_v be_v dangerous_a opinion_n and_o damnable_a doctrine_n and_o that_o what_o she_o seem_v to_o build_v with_o the_o one_o hand_n she_o pull_v down_o with_o the_o other_o that_o she_o make_v a_o mahometan_a paradise_n eat_v and_o drink_v and_o generation_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n how_o easy_a a_o thing_n be_v it_o
to_o give_v a_o hateful_a turn_v to_o one_o sentiment_n to_o make_v they_o pass_v for_o impious_a extravagant_a and_o ridiculous_a i_o shall_v therefore_o set_v down_o here_o a_o brief_a summary_n of_o her_o accessary_a sentiment_n first_o premise_v some_o thing_n that_o may_v dispose_v the_o reader_n to_o consider_v they_o calm_o and_o without_o prejudice_n 1._o own_o she_o declare_v they_o be_v reveal_v unto_o she_o by_o god_n and_o that_o now_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o near_o the_o time_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n many_o thing_n which_o be_v more_o dark_o represent_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v now_o to_o be_v manifest_o lay_v open_a 34._o when_o the_o time_n of_o fulfil_v all_o be_v at_o hand_n and_o that_o such_o thing_n be_v now_o lay_v before_o we_o like_o a_o clustre_n of_o grape_n of_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n to_o make_v we_o conceive_v something_o of_o the_o beauty_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n 2._o 223._o she_o declare_v as_o have_v be_v say_v that_o those_o accessary_a truth_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v not_o article_n of_o faith_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v inquire_v into_o from_o a_o spirit_n of_o curiosity_n be_v not_o design_v for_o all_o but_o for_o those_o who_o be_v persuade_v of_o they_o be_v thereby_o stir_v up_o so_o much_o the_o more_o to_o the_o love_n and_o admiration_n of_o god_n and_o for_o other_o they_o ma●_n let_v they_o alone_o xxxii_o sentiment_n 3._o st._n augustin_n have_v give_v we_o a_o excellent_a rule_n whereby_o to_o judge_v charitable_o of_o sentiment_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n whosoever_o say_v he_o 36._o so_o understand_v the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o any_o part_n of_o they_o as_o that_o thereby_o he_o do_v not_o build_v up_o the_o twofold_a charity_n the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n he_o do_v not_o understand_v they_o aright_o but_o whosoever_o give_v such_o a_o sense_n of_o they_o as_o be_v profitable_a for_o advance_v this_o charity_n and_o yet_o what_o he_o say_v be_v not_o the_o particular_a sense_n of_o the_o writer_n in_o that_o place_n he_o do_v not_o err_v damnable_o neither_o do_v at_o all_o lie_n and_o if_o he_o err_v by_o a_o sense_n which_o edify_v charity_n which_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o commandment_n he_o so_o err_v as_o if_o one_o by_o a_o mistake_n leave_v the_o highway_n shall_v go_v straight_o over_o the_o field_n to_o the_o place_n whither_o the_o way_n lead_v if_o these_o accessary_a sentiment_n than_o tend_v to_o promote_v the_o great_a end_n of_o religion_n the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n though_o there_o be_v no_o evidence_n for_o they_o from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o be_v neither_o hurtful_a nor_o damnable_a in_o give_v a_o account_n then_o of_o her_o accessary_a sentiment_n i_o shall_v consider_v they_o under_o these_o head_n those_o which_o relat_n to_o 1._o the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n before_o man_n fall_n 2._o the_o fall_n of_o man_n and_o its_o consequence_n 3._o the_o method_n take_v for_o man_n recovery_n by_o jesus_n christ_n 4._o the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o world_n 5._o the_o future_a state_n and_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o because_o the_o series_n and_o chain_n of_o those_o accessary_a sentiment_n can_v be_v well_o conceive_v without_o some_o mention_n of_o the_o essential_a one_o too_o i_o shall_v not_o scruple_n to_o do_v it_o where_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o understand_v the_o connexion_n of_o those_o sentiment_n fall_n 1._o as_o to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n before_o man_n fall_n the_o sum_n of_o her_o sentiment_n be_v as_o follow_v 1._o god_n when_o god_n create_v all_o thing_n at_o first_o there_o be_v no_o deformity_n in_o any_o of_o his_o work_n all_o be_v beautiful_a and_o luminous_a no_o grossness_n in_o the_o earth_n no_o whirlwind_n and_o hurricane_n in_o the_o air_n no_o tempest_n in_o the_o sea_n 34._o no_o poison_n in_o the_o herb_n no_o venom_n in_o infect_v the_o earth_n be_v all_o transparent_a throughout_o in_o it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v the_o plant_n the_o stone_n and_o metal_n all_o transparent_a likewise_o one_o may_v see_v through_o it_o to_o its_o centre_n as_o easy_o as_o through_o the_o air_n all_o the_o beast_n and_o plant_n be_v all_o beautiful_a in_o their_o respective_a kind_n no_o deformity_n in_o any_o of_o they_o and_o the_o beauty_n of_o their_o frame_n and_o contrivance_n be_v to_o be_v see_v throughout_o all_o be_v transparent_a and_o luminous_a all_o thing_n be_v worthy_a of_o god_n and_o be_v representation_n of_o his_o greatness_n magnificence_n goodness_n beauty_n light_n and_o fruitfulness_n in_o several_a way_n and_o according_a to_o their_o different_a kind_n 2._o soul_n god_n have_v resolve_v to_o form_v a_o creature_n that_o shall_v love_v and_o enjoy_v he_o and_o in_o who_o love_n he_o will_v take_v delight_n and_o pleasure_n he_o create_v man_n after_o his_o own_o image_n endue_v he_o with_o a_o immortal_a soul_n breathe_v from_o himself_o with_o understanding_n capable_a to_o receive_v he_o with_o a_o heart_n to_o desire_v and_o thirst_n after_o he_o and_o cleave_v to_o he_o 15._o with_o a_o perfect_a liberty_n and_o freewill_n to_o do_v it_o hearty_o and_o free_o and_o without_o the_o least_o limitation_n or_o constraint_n and_o to_o oblige_v he_o the_o more_o to_o love_v he_o his_o most_o bountiful_a god_n and_o lover_n give_v he_o for_o a_o accessary_a felicity_n and_o happiness_n the_o whole_a creation_n subject_n all_o his_o work_n to_o he_o to_o be_v his_o servant_n and_o to_o attend_v upon_o he_o put_v all_o thing_n under_o his_o foot_n that_o he_o receive_v the_o homage_n and_o delight_n of_o all_o the_o creature_n may_v return_v the_o praise_n of_o all_o to_o god_n in_o the_o constant_a love_n and_o adoration_n of_o so_o bountiful_a a_o god_n who_o will_v give_v himself_o to_o be_v love_v and_o enjoy_v by_o he_o and_o will_v take_v his_o delight_n with_o he_o and_o will_v give_v he_o such_o a_o world_n of_o beautiful_a creature_n to_o serve_v and_o attend_v upon_o he_o 3._o ibid._n that_o man_n may_v partake_v of_o this_o accessary_a happiness_n and_o receive_v the_o delight_n and_o homage_n of_o all_o the_o creature_n and_o rule_v over_o they_o as_o their_o lord_n and_o king_n he_o form_n to_o he_o a_o body_n as_o the_o case_n and_o organ_n of_o his_o soul_n by_o which_o he_o may_v communicate_v with_o all_o the_o creature_n and_o rule_n over_o they_o and_o endue_v it_o with_o faculty_n and_o sense_n capable_a to_o give_v they_o order_n and_o to_o take_v in_o the_o tribute_n of_o their_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n the_o sense_n of_o see_v to_o take_v in_o their_o light_n and_o beauty_n of_o hear_v to_o be_v entertain_v with_o their_o melody_n and_o music_n smell_a to_o receive_v their_o odoriferous_a steam_n and_o the_o taste_n to_o relish_v their_o sweetness_n and_o delight_n the_o power_n of_o move_a of_o speech_n and_o gesture_n whereby_o to_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o he_o may_v go_v to_o any_o place_n and_o make_v know_v his_o will_n which_o all_o obey_v 4._o body_n this_o body_n be_v not_o create_v by_o god_n after_o the_o manner_n that_o we_o see_v it_o at_o present_a but_o incomprehensible_o more_o beautiful_a and_o more_o perfect_a as_o the_o masterpiece_n of_o all_o nature_n clear_a subtle_a agile_a and_o transparent_a its_o skin_n like_o moscovy_n glass_n its_o flesh_n like_o crystal_n its_o vein_n like_o stream_n of_o ruby_n 92._o its_o water_n like_o diamond_n its_o nerve_n like_o the_o hyacinth_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o fruit_n its_o aliment_n that_o of_o all_o good_a odour_n its_o excrement_n all_o its_o part_n within_o and_o without_o its_o bone_n muscle_n sinew_n bowel_n all_o so_o bright_a frame_v with_o such_o art_n that_o all_o the_o beauty_n of_o the_o universe_n be_v nothing_o to_o the_o least_o part_n of_o it_o the_o quintessence_n of_o all_o natural_a thing_n be_v the_o matter_n of_o which_o it_o be_v form_v and_o all_o nature_n obey_v it_o if_o he_o design_v to_o go_v on_o the_o water_n they_o support_v he_o if_o to_o the_o centre_n of_o the_o earth_n it_o yield_v to_o he_o if_o through_o the_o air_n it_o be_v a_o chariot_n to_o he_o the_o sun_n the_o star_n the_o precious_a stone_n and_o all_o the_o beauty_n of_o the_o earth_n 10._o be_v nothing_o if_o compare_v with_o the_o least_o beauty_n of_o the_o body_n of_o man_n his_o soul_n be_v whole_o divine_a his_o understanding_n clear-sighted_a penetrate_v all_o the_o secret_n of_o nature_n all_o thing_n divine_a and_o supernatural_a 5._o 33._o man_n when_o he_o be_v create_v at_o first_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o principle_n of_o foecundity_n with_o a_o power_n to_o produce_v his_o like_a without_o the_o help_n of_o another_o have_v within_o
his_o body_n the_o principle_n of_o both_o nature_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n be_v a_o complete_a and_o perfect_a man_n which_o power_n be_v actuate_v upon_o ardent_a act_n of_o love_n to_o god_n and_o a_o desire_n to_o produce_v a_o creature_n like_o himself_o to_o love_v and_o enjoy_v his_o maker_n 6._o 33._o adam_n while_o he_o be_v in_o perfect_a innocence_n do_v thus_o produce_v one_o like_o himself_o who_o be_v the_o first-born_a of_o every_o creature_n the_o second_o adam_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man._n and_o god_n be_v desirous_a to_o give_v to_o man_n a_o full_a and_o perfect_a contentment_n in_o body_n and_o spirit_n and_o to_o dwell_v with_o he_o bodily_a and_o visible_o so_o that_o he_o may_v converse_v with_o man_n as_o a_o friend_n with_o his_o friend_n he_o therefore_o not_o only_o make_v man_n after_o his_o image_n but_o he_o become_v like_a to_o man_n he_o unite_v himself_o to_o the_o humane_a nature_n in_o the_o second_o adam_n that_o he_o may_v converse_v familiar_o with_o man_n by_o a_o organ_n to_o be_v see_v hear_v and_o feel_v by_o he_o conformable_a to_o his_o nature_n this_o be_v jesus_n christ_n eternal_a god_n and_o true_a man._n 7._o 65._o notwithstanding_o of_o this_o adam_z swim_v amid_o all_o sensible_a delight_n the_o time_n of_o trial_n give_v he_o be_v then_o a_o state_n of_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n begin_v to_o lean_v too_o much_o towards_o they_o and_o to_o please_v himself_o in_o they_o without_o turn_v his_o soul_n so_o constranly_a towards_o god_n and_o so_o become_v less_o sensible_a of_o the_o motion_n of_o god_n light_n and_o love_n upon_o his_o spirit_n be_v take_v up_o too_o much_o other_o way_n which_o increase_a still_o upon_o he_o to_o prevent_v his_o total_a degeneracy_n and_o that_o he_o may_v not_o sink_v so_o low_a as_o to_o place_v his_o love_n and_o affection_n on_o thing_n which_o be_v only_o earthly_a and_o material_a god_n resolve_v to_o make_v a_o help_n for_o he_o he_o for_o this_o end_n take_v one_o of_o the_o principle_n of_o foecundity_n out_o of_o man_n and_o therewith_o form_v the_o woman_n who_o be_v form_v more_o beautiful_a than_o any_o of_o the_o creature_n and_o be_v a_o more_o lively_a representation_n of_o god_n he_o may_v love_v she_o in_o god_n as_o god_n image_n be_v endue_v with_o a_o divine_a soul_n as_o he_o be_v and_o so_o she_o may_v take_v off_o his_o affection_n from_o the_o other_o creature_n and_o raise_v they_o towards_o god_n etc._n 2._o as_o to_o man_n be_v total_a fall_n and_o the_o consequence_n thereof_o 1._o too_o 57_o the_o woman_n who_o be_v give_v for_o a_o help_n to_o man_n to_o keep_v he_o from_o a_o total_a degeneracy_n listen_v to_o the_o temptation_n of_o the_o serpent_n the_o most_o subtle_a and_o beautiful_a of_o all_o the_o beast_n turn_v away_o from_o god_n herself_o and_o lead_v on_o man_n to_o do_v so_o too_o both_o of_o they_o shake_v off_o their_o dependence_n upon_o god_n and_o his_o will_n and_o follow_v their_o own_o will_n and_o break_v a_o just_a and_o easy_a command_n that_o god_n have_v give_v they_o forbid_v they_o to_o eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o one_o tree_n as_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o homage_n to_o their_o great_a creator_n and_o benefactor_n and_o that_o they_o hold_v all_o of_o he_o 2._o soul_n as_o by_o turn_v from_o the_o sun_n we_o fall_v into_o darkness_n and_o obscurity_n so_o man_n much_o more_o by_o turn_v away_o from_o god_n and_o set_v his_o heart_n upon_o the_o creature_n bring_v a_o universal_a corruption_n and_o misery_n on_o himself_o and_o on_o all_o the_o creature_n which_o have_v be_v subject_v to_o he_o above_o all_o sin_z corrupt_a man_n soul_n do_v it_o the_o great_a mischief_n 13._o have_v damn_v it_o eternal_o and_o make_v it_o like_a unto_o the_o devil_n for_o both_o be_v create_v by_o god_n to_o love_v he_o and_o when_o they_o both_o withdraw_v this_o love_n from_o god_n to_o love_v themselves_o or_o other_o creature_n they_o be_v equal_o become_v devil_n the_o one_o incarnate_a and_o the_o other_o spiritual_a deprive_v of_o all_o sort_n of_o good_a and_o fall_v into_o all_o sort_n of_o evil._n so_o that_o if_o man_n will_v consider_v himself_o narrow_o he_o shall_v find_v his_o soul_n defile_v with_o all_o sort_n of_o sin_n fill_v with_o injustice_n subject_n to_o lie_v incline_v to_o covetousness_n blow_v up_o with_o pride_n furious_a with_o anger_n lustful_a gluttonous_a slothful_a negligent_a with_o all_o other_o sort_n of_o sin_n which_o reside_v in_o the_o depth_n of_o his_o soul_n sin_n so_o corrupt_v his_o will_n that_o he_o have_v always_o a_o bent_n and_o inclination_n to_o evil_a so_o that_o all_o that_o come_v from_o the_o self-will_a of_o man_n be_v sin_n his_o self-will_a be_v fill_v with_o nothing_o but_o self-love_n sin_n have_v also_o so_o corrupt_v his_o reason_n that_o it_o be_v no_o long_o capable_a of_o discern_v and_o judge_v aright_o of_o thing_n it_o have_v so_o darken_v his_o memory_n and_o confound_v his_o understanding_n that_o he_o take_v evil_a for_o good_a and_o good_a for_o evil_a without_o judgement_n and_o reason_n body_n from_o the_o corruption_n of_o his_o soul_n do_v flow_v that_o of_o his_o body_n 6._o all_o its_o humour_n and_o part_n be_v disorder_v his_o glorious_a body_n become_v filthy_a dark_a and_o deform_v in_o every_o part_n of_o it_o contract_v that_o gross_a crust_n of_o corruption_n which_o we_o now_o carry_v about_o with_o we_o and_o which_o have_v seize_v on_o every_o the_o least_o part_n of_o it_o within_o and_o without_o so_o that_o our_o first_o parent_n be_v ashamed_a of_o themselves_o seek_v wherewith_o to_o cover_v their_o nakedness_n and_o go_v and_o hide_v themselves_o the_o sense_n also_o become_v gross_a dull_a and_o feeble_a can_v discern_v nothing_o but_o the_o outside_n of_o thing_n and_o the_o whole_a body_n become_v full_a of_o disorder_n within_o subject_a to_o the_o ill_a impression_n of_o all_o the_o creature_n and_o at_o last_o to_o dissolution_n and_o death_n 3._o creature_n 5._o man_n by_o his_o fall_n bring_v also_o a_o corruption_n and_o deformity_n upon_o all_o the_o creature_n which_o have_v be_v subject_v to_o he_o the_o earth_n become_v gross_a and_o dark_a barren_a and_o unfruitful_a and_o all_o the_o creature_n become_v hurtful_a and_o mischievous_a to_o man_n and_o rise_v up_o against_o he_o who_o have_v shake_v off_o his_o allegiance_n to_o their_o bountiful_a creator_n the_o air_n stifle_v he_o the_o water_n drown_v he_o the_o fire_n burn_v he_o the_o earth_n corn_n and_o tree_n deny_v he_o their_o fruit_n without_o his_o care_n and_o labour_n the_o star_n send_v bad_a influence_n on_o he_o and_o he_o be_v subject_v to_o cold_a heat_n hunger_n thirst_v weariness_n and_o innumerable_a other_o evil_n be_v deprive_v of_o the_o dominion_n he_o have_v over_o all_o thing_n and_o subject_v unto_o they_o 4._o mankind_n all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v the_o natural_a offspring_n of_o adam_n and_o do_v descend_v from_o he_o both_o as_o to_o body_n and_o soul_n so_o that_o they_o must_v partake_v of_o the_o same_o quality_n with_o he_o 23._o be_v all_o his_o live_a image_n and_o therefore_o all_o man_n who_o be_v in_o his_o loin_n when_o he_o turn_v away_o from_o god_n sin_v in_o he_o and_o do_v inherit_v his_o corruption_n and_o misery_n both_o of_o body_n and_o mind_n as_o if_o he_o have_v not_o sin_v he_o have_v produce_v all_o man_n to_o salvation_n as_o god_n create_v they_o but_o every_o man_n for_o himself_o will_v have_v have_v the_o same_o liberty_n that_o adam_n have_v to_o remain_v firm_a in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n or_o to_o turn_v away_o from_o it_o by_o place_v his_o affection_n on_o himself_o or_o other_o creature_n he_o may_v damn_v or_o save_v himself_o during_o this_o time_n of_o trial_n and_o all_o who_o have_v remain_v faithful_a to_o god_n will_v have_v be_v save_v on_o the_o contrary_a all_o who_o have_v withdraw_v their_o affection_n from_o he_o to_o love_v any_o other_o thing_n will_v have_v be_v damn_v and_o their_o posterity_n will_v have_v be_v in_o the_o same_o state_n though_o adam_n have_v never_o sin_v so_o free_a and_o independent_a will_v man_n have_v be_v during_o their_o time_n of_o trial_n which_o be_v that_o in_o which_o we_o live_v at_o present_a and_o must_v continue_v till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o then_o be_v confirm_v in_o grace_n as_o the_o faithful_a angel_n be_v they_o can_v never_o fall_v away_o be_v perfect_o unite_v to_o god_n after_o this_o time_n of_o trial._n recovery_n 3._o as_o to_o the_o mean_n and_o method_n for_o man_n recovery_n 1._o surety_n all_o mankind_n have_v be_v thus_o irrecoverable_o lose_v and_o damn_v as_o the_o fall_v angel_n be_v if_o the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o elder_a brother_n have_v
not_o interpose_v and_o become_v a_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o they_o who_o be_v touch_v with_o a_o deep_a fence_n of_o the_o wretched_a state_n into_o which_o man_n have_v plunge_v himself_o he_o ardent_o pray_v and_o intercee_v with_o his_o heavenly_a father_n that_o he_o will_v have_v pity_n on_o those_o his_o wretched_a rebellious_a creature_n and_o his_o brethren_n that_o he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o pardon_v they_o grant_v they_o his_o grace_n though_o most_o unworthy_a of_o it_o and_o allow_v they_o yet_o a_o time_n of_o trial_n become_v surety_n for_o they_o 30._o that_o they_o shall_v detest_v and_o abhor_v their_o corruption_n deny_v themselves_o and_o return_v to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n his_o mediation_n be_v accept_v and_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o merit_n and_o intercession_n man_n be_v pardon_v grace_n be_v give_v he_o of_o new_a and_o a_o time_n of_o trial_n allow_v he_o in_o which_o he_o must_v lead_v a_o life_n of_o penitence_n and_o thereby_o mortify_v his_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o return_v to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n 2._o etc._n the_o time_n of_o trial_n give_v to_o man_n at_o first_o be_v a_o state_n of_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n but_o since_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n the_o time_n of_o trial_n assign_v he_o be_v a_o state_n of_o labour_n and_o toil_n and_o therefore_o god_n thrust_v man_n out_o of_o a_o delightful_a paradise_n and_o suffer_v the_o malediction_n and_o curse_n of_o his_o sin_n to_o fall_v upon_o the_o creature_n in_o a_o great_a measure_n that_o they_o all_o may_v afford_v he_o vexation_n instead_o of_o pleasure_n and_o so_o he_o may_v have_v occasion_n of_o do_v penitence_n because_o he_o have_v turn_v away_o his_o heart_n and_o affection_n from_o god_n and_o set_v they_o on_o the_o creature_n 3._o he_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v undertake_v the_o recovery_n of_o mankind_n out_o of_o pure_a love_n and_o compassion_n he_o provide_v mean_n and_o remedy_n according_a to_o the_o different_a state_n of_o their_o malady_n the_o first_o command_n he_o give_v man_n as_o a_o necessary_a mean_n of_o his_o recovery_n etc._n be_v a_o life_n of_o penitence_n and_o labour_n to_o eat_v his_o meat_n in_o the_o sweat_n of_o his_o face_n but_o man_n multiply_v their_o sin_n he_o multiply_v his_o command_n as_o so_o many_o mean_n to_o turn_v they_o from_o their_o sin_n and_o give_v they_o variety_n of_o precept_n to_o make_v they_o think_v upon_o god_n in_o all_o their_o action_n and_o word_n so_o that_o their_o heart_n may_v be_v in_o a_o continual_a elevation_n to_o he_o but_o they_o cleave_v to_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o law_n without_o comprehend_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o and_o turn_v away_o yet_o more_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n place_v their_o affection_n on_o the_o creature_n the_o riches_n pleasure_n and_o honour_n of_o this_o life_n please_v themselves_o with_o the_o outside_n of_o their_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n 4._o he_o when_o all_o other_o mean_v prove_v unsuccessful_a jesus_n christ_n try_v the_o last_o remedy_n man_n be_v not_o capable_a in_o their_o mortal_a state_n of_o be_v teach_v by_o he_o in_o his_o glorious_a body_n he_o have_v obtain_v of_o his_o father_n to_o give_v they_o in_o spirit_n good_a thought_n and_o motion_n yea_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a light_n but_o all_o this_o be_v not_o capable_a to_o convert_v they_o or_o to_o make_v they_o sensible_a they_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o damnation_n because_o of_o each_o one_o be_v inveterate_a habit_n to_o follow_v their_o brutish_a nature_n 50._o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o mean_a visible_a and_o sensible_a to_o their_o corruption_n to_o move_v their_o heart_n otherwise_o they_o have_v all_o be_v lose_v without_o a_o sense_n of_o their_o own_o misery_n all_o perish_v without_o perceive_v it_o by_o a_o damnable_a imitation_n of_o one_o another_o thus_o all_o run_v in_o the_o broad_a way_n to_o hell_n have_v therefore_o obtain_v from_o his_o father_n mercy_n and_o pardon_n for_o they_o upon_o their_o repentance_n jesus_n christ_n resolve_v to_o become_v a_o mortal_a man._n he_o therefore_o clothes_n himself_o with_o our_o mortality_n and_o bring_v along_o with_o he_o his_o divine_a light_n to_o enlighten_v they_o and_o his_o divine_a love_n to_o inflame_v they_o he_o become_v in_o all_o thing_n like_v to_o corrupt_a man_n yet_o without_o sin_n he_o teach_v they_o by_o his_o word_n and_o his_o by_o example_n how_o they_o shall_v mortify_v their_o corrupt_a nature_n do_v penitence_n and_o recover_v the_o love_n of_o god_n he_o charge_v himself_o with_o the_o misery_n and_o frailty_n that_o sin_n have_v bring_v upon_o humane_a nature_n take_v on_o himself_o all_o their_o malediction_n and_o the_o punishment_n due_a to_o their_o sin_n which_o he_o do_v bear_v and_o suffer_v as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o sinner_n live_v a_o life_n of_o extreme_a poverty_n labour_n contempt_n and_o pain_n undergo_a a_o shameful_a painful_a and_o accurse_a death_n and_o so_o obtain_v pardon_n for_o all_o who_o shall_v thus_o follow_v his_o step_n 5._o vis●ons_n god_n make_v his_o will_n know_v to_o good_a man_n to_o the_o ancient_a patriarch_n and_o prophet_n by_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o since_o man_n be_v teach_v by_o jesus_n christ_n in_o his_o mortal_a body_n there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o see_v or_o understand_v by_o his_o glorious_a body_n they_o have_v receive_v the_o light_n of_o truth_n so_o that_o they_o need_v not_o bodily_a vision_n to_o understand_v the_o will_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n speak_v now_o to_o they_o in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n enlighten_v soul_n with_o his_o divine_a light_n 99_o inward_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n which_o operate_v in_o soul_n disengage_v from_o themselves_o and_o from_o all_o earthly_a affection_n act_v in_o they_o sweet_o and_o powerful_o when_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o mind_n it_o hear_v then_o as_o a_o soft_a wind_n which_o surround_v it_o with_o joy_n make_v it_o see_v what_o it_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o avoid_v both_o for_o its_o own_o conduct_n and_o for_o that_o of_o other_o well-disposed_a people_n state_n 4._o as_o to_o the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o world_n the_o sum_n of_o her_o accessary_a sentiment_n be_v 1._o present_a that_o all_o man_n have_v corrupt_v their_o way_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n in_o the_o world_n true_o mortify_v to_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o regenerate_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 9_o 2._o babel_n that_o the_o present_a state_n of_o christendom_n be_v a_o perfect_a babel_n our_o language_n be_v confound_v and_o the_o builder_n do_v not_o understand_v one_o another_o babel_n 3._o 1._o that_o we_o have_v gloss_v away_o the_o law_n and_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o our_o exposition_n as_o much_o as_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n do_v moses_n law_n by_o their_o tradition_n 4._o now_o that_o we_o live_v present_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o he_o rule_v in_o spirit_n through_o all_o the_o earth_n by_o his_o three_o antichristian_a quality_n which_o he_o shed_v into_o man_n nature_n injustice_n malice_n and_o hypocrisy_n 100_o under_o a_o cover_n of_o religion_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o three_o divine_a quality_n righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n which_o jesus_n christ_n come_v to_o plant_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o life_n of_o all_o his_o disciple_n that_o man_n seduce_v one_o another_o under_o fair_a appearance_n ●9_n that_o sin_n be_v mask_v with_o holiness_n and_o cover_v with_o hypocrisy_n 5._o 76._o that_o the_o source_n of_o all_o the_o evil_n in_o the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o churchman_n and_o that_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n be_v in_o the_o sanctuary_n that_o all_o the_o degeneracy_n of_o christian_n come_v from_o the_o degeneracy_n of_o their_o guide_n 6._o begin_v that_o the_o wickedness_n of_o man_n now_o be_v universal_a and_o come_v to_o a_o height_n great_a than_o in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n the_o sentence_n of_o god_n last_o judgement_n be_v irrevocable_o pass_v and_o the_o plague_n be_v begin_v and_o will_v continue_v till_o that_o by_o war_n famine_n pestilence_n and_o other_o grievous_a judgement_n 29._o all_o the_o wicked_a be_v consume_v from_o off_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o this_o shall_v be_v do_v slow_o and_o in_o a_o course_n of_o many_o year_n that_o many_o may_v thereby_o be_v awaken_v and_o bring_v to_o repentance_n come_v 5._o as_o to_o the_o state_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v her_o sentiment_n be_v spirit_n 1._o that_o god_n will_v yet_o once_o renew_v his_o gospel-spirit_n upon_o earth_n and_o will_v fill_v well-disposed_a soul_n with_o the_o spirit_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v while_n upon_o earth_n and_o
doctrine_n write_v by_o his_o own_o disciple_n and_o dress_v he_o up_o in_o such_o a_o mock-robe_n as_o may_v make_v he_o and_o his_o doctrine_n the_o object_n of_o the_o scorn_n and_o hatred_n of_o the_o people_n i_o know_v people_n flatter_v themselves_o with_o the_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o have_v treat_v jesus_n christ_n at_o this_o rate_n as_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n in_o our_o saviour_n day_n imagine_v that_o have_v they_o live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o father_n they_o will_v not_o have_v persecute_v and_o kill_v the_o prophet_n as_o their_o father_n do_v and_o yet_o our_o lord_n show_v they_o they_o have_v the_o same_o spirit_n though_o they_o seem_v to_o honour_v the_o prophet_n *_o by_o build_n their_o tomb_n 30._o and_o garnish_v their_o sepulcher_n and_o say_v if_o we_o have_v be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n we_o will_v not_o have_v be_v partaker_n with_o they_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o prophet_n yet_o they_o persecute_v those_o who_o be_v then_o send_v among_o they_o and_o that_o the_o same_o temper_n and_o spirit_n reign_v now_o in_o the_o world_n a._n b._n make_v appear_v in_o her_o write_n and_o her_o enemy_n do_v discover_v it_o in_o their_o practice_n v._o clear_v but_o it_o will_v be_v say_v they_o have_v good_a reason_n to_o treat_v she_o as_o they_o do_v we_o come_v therefore_o to_o consider_v the_o prejudices_fw-la raise_v against_o her_o doctrine_n and_o they_o have_v not_o be_v want_v to_o represent_v she_o as_o the_o gross_a of_o heretic_n but_o wisdom_n be_v justify_v of_o her_o child_n and_o 1._o trinity_n they_o accuse_v she_o of_o deny_v the_o holy_a trinity_n and_o ground_n their_o accusation_n upon_o this_o that_o she_o do_v not_o approve_v of_o the_o word_n person_n to_o express_v the_o distinction_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o use_v to_o explain_v it_o by_o comparison_n and_o similitude_n whereas_o she_o declare_v that_o she_o believe_v in_o one_o divine_a essence_n the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n be_v incomprehensible_a 10._o and_o so_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a presumption_n in_o man_n who_o can_v comprehend_v that_o which_o be_v in_o themselves_o what_o their_o memory_n understanding_n and_o will_n be_v yet_o to_o imagine_v they_o will_v easy_o comprehend_v what_o be_v in_o god_n that_o our_o soul_n which_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o silly_a creature_n be_v yet_o invisible_a and_o incomprehensible_a to_o we_o though_o it_o be_v in_o we_o and_o though_o we_o perceive_v and_o feel_v it_o to_o act_n and_o operate_v that_o no_o body_n can_v comprehend_v what_o a_o soul_n be_v and_o yet_o man_n be_v so_o presumptuous_a as_o that_o they_o will_v needs_o know_v what_o be_v in_o god_n and_o what_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v which_o be_v in_o he_o and_o that_o not_o for_o to_o honour_v or_o love_v he_o the_o more_o but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o talk_v and_o dispute_v well_o of_o they_o and_o to_o draw_v evil_a consequence_n from_o they_o 112._o that_o god_n make_v st._n augustin_n know_v that_o this_o be_v incomprehensible_a by_o any_o creature_n when_o once_o walk_v by_o the_o seaside_n and_o labour_v to_o understand_v it_o he_o see_v a_o child_n run_v to_o fetch_v the_o water_n of_o the_o sea_n in_o his_o hand_n into_o a_o little_a hole_n which_o he_o observe_v and_o ask_v the_o child_n what_o he_o do_v he_o reply_v he_o will_v have_v all_o the_o water_n of_o the_o ocean_n bring_v into_o that_o little_a pit_n at_o which_o st._n augustin_n smile_v say_v you_o can_v never_o do_v this_o my_o child_n give_v over_o this_o undertake_n the_o child_n reply_v i_o shall_v soon_o do_v this_o than_o you_o shall_v understand_v what_o you_o will_v comprehend_v with_o your_o understanding_n and_o then_o evanished_a 314122._o it_o be_v true_a she_o make_v use_v of_o similitude_n to_o express_v it_o by_o as_o that_o there_o be_v in_o god_n the_o eternal_a understanding_n the_o eternal_a word_n the_o eternal_a love_n or_o heart_n as_o there_o be_v in_o man_n the_o understanding_n the_o speech_n and_o the_o heart_n that_o there_o be_v in_o man_n the_o understanding_n the_o memory_n and_o the_o will_n which_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n that_o god_n one_o in_o essence_n have_v in_o himself_o three_o essential_a quality_n which_o be_v diverse_a righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n and_o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v do_v by_o god_n but_o with_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n altogether_o and_o if_o one_o of_o these_o quality_n be_v want_v it_o can_v come_v from_o g●d_n who_o be_v indivisible_a in_o these_o three_o quality_n which_o may_v be_v call_v person_n that_o she_o do_v not_o pretend_v thereby_o to_o give_v adiquate_a notion_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n which_o she_o declare_v be_v incomprehensible_a but_o that_o instead_o of_o the_o dark_a dry_a and_o barren_a speculation_n of_o the_o school_n thereabouts_o we_o may_v consider_v those_o three_o divine_a quality_n without_o which_o god_n never_o do_v any_o work_n and_o to_o find_v if_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n we_o must_v see_v if_o we_o partake_v from_o he_o of_o those_o three_o quality_n of_o the_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o if_o we_o do_v not_o find_v they_o all_o three_o together_o in_o our_o soul_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o persuade_v ourselves_o that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n for_o as_o we_o approach_v unto_o he_o by_o love_n according_o those_o three_o quality_n increase_v in_o the_o soul_n and_o as_o we_o find_v our_o soul_n to_o be_v estrange_v from_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n according_o we_o be_v estrange_v from_o god_n in_o use_v similitude_n thus_o to_o express_v the_o holy_a trinity_n she_o do_v nothing_o but_o what_o st._n 5._o augustin_n and_o other_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v do_v and_o she_o be_v far_o from_o say_v that_o nothing_o else_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n but_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v take_v up_o with_o such_o useful_a consideration_n of_o what_o be_v in_o god_n rather_o than_o feed_v our_o mind_n with_o fruitless_a speculation_n which_o tend_v only_o to_o nourish_v debate_n and_o curiosity_n and_o when_o once_o some_o of_o her_o friend_n tell_v she_o that_o the_o churchman_n accuse_v she_o of_o make_v the_o whole_a mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n to_o consist_v in_o the_o righteousness_n 554._o goodness_n and_o truth_n of_o god_n she_o answer_v express_o they_o lie_v in_o so_o say_v they_o say_v to_o she_o that_o she_o have_v say_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n more_o than_o once_o that_o righteousness_n truth_n and_o goodness_n be_v the_o trinity_n that_o be_v in_o god_n she_o reply_v i_o have_v no_o design_n to_o search_v into_o the_o depth_n of_o this_o mystery_n and_o to_o say_v that_o all_o do_v consist_v in_o this_o but_o that_o this_o be_v the_o most_o profitable_a and_o the_o most_o save_a consideration_n that_o we_o can_v have_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n of_o which_o the_o ordinary_a speculation_n be_v often_o rash_a and_o unprofitable_a and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n injurious_a to_o god_n 114._o she_o do_v not_o desire_v to_o use_v often_o the_o word_n person_n because_o she_o look_v on_o that_o as_o a_o word_n proper_a to_o create_v being_n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v indeed_o a_o person_n in_o god_n be_v true_o man_n as_o we_o be_v yet_o she_o sometime_o express_v the_o mystery_n by_o the_o word_n person_n in_o temoign_n de_fw-fr verity_n part_v 2._o p._n 199._o she_o say_v i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v any_o body_n live_v upon_o earth_n who_o do_v more_o honour_n the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n than_o i_o do_v and_o i_o believe_v firm_o one_o only_a god_n in_o three_o person_n as_o i_o have_v do_v from_o my_o childhood_n and_o how_o can_v i_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n since_o it_o be_v see_v by_o all_o my_o book_n that_o i_o hold_v jesus_n christ_n for_o true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n both_o together_o even_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v to_o honour_v he_o more_o than_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v god_n and_o man_n only_o since_o he_o be_v bear_v in_o bethlehem_n and_o charge_v with_o our_o misery_n and_o sorrow_n vi_o christ_n they_o accuse_v she_o also_o of_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n though_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o false_a as_o appear_v through_o all_o her_o write_n she_o declare_v express_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o her_o faith_n that_o she_o believe_v that_o ●esus_fw-la christ_n be_v true_a eternal_a god_n and_o true_a man._n and_o in_o
say_v he_o be_v our_o pledge_n and_o by_o his_o suffering_n have_v pay_v the_o penalty_n due_a to_o our_o sin_n have_v die_v to_o redeem_v we_o while_o we_o will_v suffer_v nothing_o nor_o share_v in_o his_o pain_n be_v well_o please_v to_o have_v our_o debt_n pay_v with_o the_o good_n of_o another_o it_o be_v on_o the_o other_o hand_n a_o great_a boldness_n in_o those_o who_o think_v they_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o their_o own_o merit_n without_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o if_o jesus_n christ_n have_v not_o merit_v for_o they_o the_o grace_n to_o do_v well_o they_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o have_v so_o much_o as_o one_o good_a thought_n or_o desire_n of_o do_v one_o good_a work_n so_o that_o all_o the_o grace_n they_o have_v of_o do_v any_o good_a come_v from_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n though_o by_o ignorance_n they_o despise_v it_o as_o poor_a blind_v one_o who_o can_v discern_v nothing_o through_o the_o weakness_n of_o their_o sight_n for_o if_o jesus_n christ_n have_v not_o come_v to_o bring_v light_n to_o the_o world_n no_o body_n will_v have_v perceive_v his_o own_o miserable_a state_n and_o if_o he_o have_v not_o intercede_v with_o his_o father_n no_o body_n will_v have_v have_v the_o grace_n to_o receive_v his_o light_n so_o that_o without_o jesus_n christ_n all_o man_n will_v have_v remain_v lose_v through_o their_o blindness_n and_o will_v never_o have_v be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v by_o what_o mean_v they_o ought_v to_o return_v to_o god_n if_o jesus_n christ_n have_v not_o come_v to_o teach_v they_o by_o word_n and_o deed._n and_o if_o he_o have_v only_o teach_v they_o by_o word_n as_o the_o other_o prophet_n no_o body_n will_v have_v follow_v he_o since_o they_o believe_v even_o yet_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o follow_v the_o evangelical_n life_n but_o he_o himself_o have_v put_v it_o in_o practice_n before_o man_n eye_n that_o after_o his_o example_n they_o must_v endeavour_v to_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n by_o the_o union_n of_o his_o suffering_n and_o of_o his_o charity_n which_o be_v sacrifice_n more_o agreeable_a to_o god_n his_o father_n than_o our_o unclean_a offering_n and_o our_o work_n defile_v with_o sin_n if_o one_o have_v mortal_o offend_v his_o equal_a he_o dare_v not_o of_o himself_o procure_v peace_n and_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o offence_n but_o he_o will_v interpose_v some_o mediator_n who_o be_v a_o friend_n of_o the_o offend_a person_n to_o satisfy_v his_o just_a wrath._n but_o they_o who_o will_v be_v save_v by_o their_o good_a work_n have_v too_o much_o pride_n to_o take_v jesus_n christ_n as_o mediator_n but_o with_o a_o up-lifted_n head_n they_o address_v to_o god_n who_o they_o have_v so_o often_o offend_v that_o they_o rather_o draw_v down_o his_o avenge_a hand_n upon_o their_o head_n than_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n for_o god_n resist_v the_o proud_a and_o give_v his_o heart_n to_o the_o humble_a if_o they_o join_v their_o good_a work_n to_o the_o humility_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o may_v peradventure_o receive_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n by_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n but_o stand_v up_o as_o the_o pharisee_n who_o thank_v god_n for_o his_o good_a work_n they_o shall_v no_o more_o be_v justify_v than_o he_o be_v when_o he_o go_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n because_o he_o who_o be_v not_o clothe_v with_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o admit_v to_o his_o father_n since_o before_o his_o come_v into_o the_o world_n all_o man_n be_v enemy_n to_o god_n so_o that_o he_o who_o be_v not_o clothe_v with_o jesus_n christ_n can_v be_v acknowledge_v for_o his_o friend_n far_o less_o for_o his_o son_n see_v the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o only_a son_n in_o which_o he_o take_v pleasure_n and_o not_o in_o another_o he_o therefore_o who_o think_v to_o go_v to_o god_n without_o the_o mediation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n will_v be_v reject_v as_o unworthy_a and_o rash_a because_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o only_a door_n of_o salvation_n they_o be_v thief_n who_o will_v enter_v by_o the_o window_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o that_o only_o belong_v to_o the_o disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o which_o those_o great_o deceive_v themselves_o who_o believe_v that_o they_o may_v enter_v into_o it_o while_o they_o despise_v he_o or_o reject_v his_o merit_n which_o have_v open_v the_o door_n to_o all_o those_o who_o will_v follow_v and_o imitate_v he_o yet_o not_o to_o those_o who_o esteem_n jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o merit_n but_o with_o all_o this_o will_v not_o embrace_v penitence_n under_o a_o pretext_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v satisfy_v whole_o for_o their_o sin_n comprehend_v even_o those_o which_o they_o shall_v commit_v in_o time_n to_o come_v as_o well_o as_o those_o which_o they_o have_v commit_v in_o time_n past_a in_o which_o error_n be_v the_o most_o part_n of_o those_o who_o be_v call_v christian_n yea_o among_o other_o the_o most_o perfect_a we_o hear_v nothing_o more_o ordinary_a in_o their_o pious_a discourse_n than_o to_o say_v god_n be_v good_a he_o will_v save_v we_o and_o jesus_n christ_n die_v to_o give_v we_o entry_n into_o paradise_n and_o with_o these_o fine_a discourse_n every_o one_o think_v they_o be_v sure_a of_o paradise_n even_o though_o they_o live_v and_o die_v in_o their_o natural_a motion_n and_o sentiment_n which_o be_v a_o great_a mistake_n for_o god_n though_o he_o be_v good_a will_v save_v no_o body_n but_o he_o who_o shall_v satisfy_v his_o divine_a justice_n the_o merit_n of_o the_o death_n and_o suffer_v of_o jesus_n christ_n will_v never_o be_v apply_v but_o to_o soul_n which_o be_v regenerate_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o he_o have_v not_o suffer_v but_o for_o those_o who_o from_o a_o natural_a life_n shall_v enter_v into_o a_o spiritual_a one_o for_o jesus_n christ_n say_v that_o all_o righteousness_n must_v be_v fulfil_v now_o it_o be_v not_o just_a that_o they_o who_o have_v forsake_v a_o dependence_n upon_o god_n to_o depend_v upon_o their_o own_o will_n shall_v enjoy_v the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n without_o be_v convert_v and_o embrace_v his_o spirit_n since_o he_o come_v not_o but_o to_o bring_v sinner_n to_o repentance_n and_o he_o who_o continue_v to_o persevere_v in_o his_o natural_a life_n can_v repent_v and_o so_o can_v enjoy_v the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n since_o it_o be_v not_o for_o those_o that_o he_o have_v suffer_v or_o merit_v but_o only_o for_o those_o who_o by_o ignorance_n or_o frailty_n have_v quit_v their_o dependence_n upon_o god_n and_o delight_v themselves_o in_o the_o creature_n without_o think_v they_o ought_v to_o delight_v themselves_o in_o god_n alone_o they_o live_v in_o the_o darkness_n of_o death_n without_o know_v it_o therefore_o christ_n have_v compassion_n on_o they_o and_o offer_v himself_o to_o his_o father_n promise_v unto_o he_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v convert_v and_o do_v penitence_n provide_v he_o bring_v they_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n by_o which_o they_o may_v get_v out_o of_o their_o darkness_n and_o their_o error_n in_o this_o jesus_n christ_n be_v our_o pledge_n and_o answer_v for_o our_o penitence_n with_o which_o we_o must_v be_v save_v and_o not_o otherwise_o therefore_o they_o form_n to_o themselves_o imaginary_a way_n in_o the_o air_n who_o think_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v to_o save_v we_o in_o speculative_a way_n or_o by_o some_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n see_v our_o redemption_n be_v accommodate_v to_o our_o capacity_n but_o the_o devil_n to_o divert_v we_o from_o take_v the_o straight_a way_n through_o which_o jesus_n christ_n walk_v blind_v our_o eye_n with_o imaginary_a thing_n that_o we_o may_v never_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o straight_a truth_n make_v some_o believe_v that_o they_o can_v be_v save_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o other_o that_o his_o merit_n will_v save_v they_o even_o though_o they_o use_v no_o endeavour_n to_o imitate_v and_o follow_v he_o many_o other_o passage_n may_v i_o bring_v out_o of_o her_o write_n but_o these_o may_v show_v her_o sentiment_n in_o this_o matter_n the_o sum_n of_o her_o sentiment_n come_v to_o this_o christ_n that_o man_n turn_v away_o his_o heart_n and_o his_o affection_n from_o god_n thereby_o all_o communion_n between_o god_n and_o man_n cease_v and_o so_o man_n be_v plunge_v into_o a_o irrecoverable_a state_n of_o sin_n and_o misery_n as_o well_o as_o the_o fall_v angel_n if_o there_o have_v be_v none_o to_o interpose_v for_o he_o with_o god_n for_o who_o sake_n he_o shall_v show_v he_o mercy_n there_o be_v nothing_o now_o in_o man_n that_o can_v move_v god_n to_o have_v any_o regard_n for_o he_o that_o jesus_n christ_n true_a god_n and_o
to_o his_o image_n we_o must_v suffer_v with_o he_o if_o we_o will_v reign_v with_o he_o he_o be_v meritorious_a and_o expiatory_a and_o exemplary_a we_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o our_o purification_n by_o his_o he_o obtain_v pardon_n and_o grace_n for_o we_o and_o change_v the_o eternal_a punishment_n we_o deserve_v 35._o into_o a_o temporal_a penitence_n for_o our_o purification_n and_o recovery_n and_o to_o say_v we_o can_v undergo_v this_o penitence_n be_v to_o have_v no_o faith_n in_o his_o merit_n to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v enough_o that_o he_o do_v undergo_v this_o for_o we_o be_v the_o great_a indignity_n do_v he_o and_o the_o great_a cheat_n that_o we_o can_v put_v upon_o our_o soul_n it_o be_v to_o belie_v and_o be_v false_a to_o our_o surety_n and_o our_o pledge_n it_o be_v like_a bankrupt_n to_o swagger_v and_o rant_v it_o out_o with_o our_o creditor_n good_n because_o our_o surety_n have_v pay_v the_o debt_n for_o we_o it_o be_v to_o make_v jesus_n our_o slave_n to_o suffer_v all_o manner_n of_o affliction_n poverty_n reproach_n and_o pain_n for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v go_v to_o heaven_n in_o the_o pleasant_a and_o broad_a way_n of_o honour_n wealth_n and_o pleasure_n it_o be_v to_o be_v well_o please_v that_o the_o physician_n have_v provide_v wholesome_a and_o necessary_a physic_n for_o our_o recovery_n and_o have_v take_v it_o himself_o for_o our_o direction_n and_o encouragement_n but_o though_o we_o be_v sick_a to_o death_n we_o will_v not_o taste_v it_o ourselves_o because_o of_o the_o bitterness_n of_o it_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v recover_v nevertheless_o because_o the_o physician_n have_v take_v it_o jesus_n christ_n lead_v this_o life_n of_o penitence_n for_o we_o in_o his_o visible_a and_o mortal_a body_n that_o he_o may_v show_v we_o how_o ready_a he_o be_v still_o to_o undergo_v it_o in_o every_o one_o of_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n 8._o god_n have_v no_o need_n of_o this_o our_o penitence_n 35._o but_o we_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o it_o to_o recover_v the_o love_n of_o god_n he_o do_v not_o covet_v our_o wealth_n or_o honour_n or_o friend_n or_o ease_n in_o that_o he_o require_v of_o we_o to_o be_v poor_a in_o spirit_n to_o deny_v ourselves_o to_o take_v up_o our_o cross_n and_o follow_v christ_n to_o forsake_v all_o thing_n since_o he_o create_v all_o thing_n for_o man_n and_o will_v be_v well_o please_v he_o can_v enjoy_v they_o still_o but_o man_n be_v become_v so_o miserable_a that_o he_o can_v enjoy_v these_o thing_n without_o set_v his_o heart_n upon_o they_o and_o turn_v it_o away_o from_o god_n and_o therefore_o jesus_n christ_n have_v give_v this_o his_o gospel-law_n without_o which_o no_o body_n can_v recover_v the_o love_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o sad_a mistake_n then_o to_o think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n but_o only_o by_o way_n of_o gratitude_n and_o thankfulness_n to_o god_n as_o if_o he_o have_v need_n of_o our_o acknowledgement_n or_o as_o if_o we_o can_v make_v he_o present_v of_o our_o good_a work_n to_o thank_v he_o which_o can_v be_v say_v but_o in_o contempt_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o god_n who_o possess_v all_o in_o himself_o and_o seek_v nothing_o without_o himself_o and_o need_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v give_v he_o any_o thing_n all_o the_o good_a work_n that_o man_n can_v do_v be_v for_o no_o other_o end_v but_o to_o resist_v and_o overcome_v the_o evil_n of_o their_o corruption_n and_o they_o be_v as_o necessary_a for_o our_o salvation_n as_o bread_n be_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n for_o we_o can_v be_v save_v without_o subdue_a our_o corruption_n and_o no_o body_n can_v do_v this_o but_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o such_o good_a work_n and_o such_o penitence_n as_o stifle_n and_o mortify_v the_o vice_n and_o sin_n which_o this_o corruption_n have_v bring_v into_o the_o soul_n 9_o it_o be_v a_o pride_n to_o glory_n in_o our_o penitence_n 107_o since_o it_o be_v enjoin_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n it_o ought_v rather_o to_o fill_v we_o with_o humility_n and_o confusion_n for_o in_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o god_n create_v we_o to_o live_v in_o all_o sort_n of_o delight_n without_o any_o pain_n all_o this_o beautiful_a world_n be_v create_v to_o serve_v for_o pleasure_n to_o the_o body_n of_o man_n and_o god_n himself_o be_v the_o delight_n of_o his_o soul_n but_o sin_n only_o have_v change_v that_o excellent_a order_n and_o make_v man_n subject_a to_o that_o over_o which_o he_o ought_v to_o rule_v because_o he_o have_v withdraw_v his_o subjection_n from_o god_n our_o sin_n have_v occasion_v the_o law_n of_o penitence_n which_o jesus_n christ_n come_v to_o teach_v we_o by_o word_n and_o deed._n this_o penitence_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o undergo_a pennance_n choose_v by_o ourselves_o and_o after_o our_o fancy_n 11._o by_o which_o the_o devil_n will_v drive_v we_o headlong_o and_o excite_v we_o to_o vainglory_n and_o which_o usual_o make_v man_n presumptuous_a believe_v themselves_o to_o be_v better_a than_o other_o and_o that_o god_n be_v oblige_v to_o they_o for_o their_o good_a work_n as_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi all_o this_o proceed_v from_o self-love_n but_o true_a penitence_n consist_v in_o take_v patient_o whatsoever_o god_n permit_v to_o befall_v we_o either_o to_o our_o body_n estate_n or_o mind_n and_o willing_o to_o suffer_v it_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o penitence_n to_o satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n for_o every_o moment_n there_o fall_v out_o occasion_n of_o suffer_v and_o and_o submission_n so_o that_o we_o need_v not_o seek_v for_o they_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o practise_v this_o resignation_n of_o our_o will_n to_o god_n for_o accomplish_v the_o save_a penitence_n which_o he_o have_v enjoin_v we_o and_o for_o the_o exercise_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o virtue_n 10._o 106_o since_o then_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n can_v not_o permit_v that_o pardon_n and_o grace_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o sinful_a man_n but_o upon_o condition_n that_o he_o turn_v away_o from_o sin_n to_o god_n and_o in_o order_n to_o that_o live_v a_o life_n of_o penitence_n and_o cooperate_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o suffer_v self-denial_n and_o mortification_n which_o god_n will_v communicate_v to_o he_o if_o he_o sincere_o desire_v to_o be_v save_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o man_n satisfy_v this_o duty_n which_o be_v so_o just_a before_o god_n and_o which_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n require_v as_o well_o as_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o this_o be_v that_o which_o she_o call_v man_n satisfy_v god_n justice_n on_o his_o part_n this_o be_v that_o from_o which_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n do_v not_o procure_v we_o a_o dispensation_n for_o than_o he_o have_v neither_o be_v just_a to_o god_n nor_o we_o but_o he_o merit_v the_o acceptance_n of_o it_o at_o god_n hand_n and_o grace_n and_o strength_n for_o we_o to_o perform_v it_o and_o teach_v we_o how_o to_o undergo_v it_o if_o people_n be_v nice_a and_o captious_a and_o will_v needs_o carp_v at_o word_n and_o expression_n as_o satisfaction_n and_o the_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n while_o they_o understand_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o they_o no_o body_n will_v contend_v with_o they_o about_o they_o provide_v they_o grant_v the_o truth_n and_o reality_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o no_o body_n will_v be_v save_v by_o the_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n without_o the_o mortification_n of_o their_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o the_o recovery_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n it_o be_v good_a consideration_n which_o be_v now_o general_o assign_v 15._o why_o god_n think_v not_o fit_a as_o governor_n of_o the_o world_n to_o pardon_v rebellious_a man_n without_o the_o intervention_n of_o a_o expiatory_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o life_n and_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o man_n may_v thereby_o see_v the_o evil_a of_o sin_n and_o god_n infinite_a hatred_n and_o abhorrence_n of_o it_o and_o so_o may_v be_v divert_v from_o continue_v in_o it_o or_o return_v to_o it_o it_o be_v for_o the_o very_a same_o reason_n that_o god_n think_v not_o fit_a to_o pardon_v man_n for_o the_o suffering_n of_o jesus_n christ_n unless_o he_o also_o follow_v he_o in_o a_o life_n of_o penitence_n and_o suffering_n for_o we_o be_v not_o so_o sensible_a of_o what_o other_o suffer_v neither_o do_v it_o breed_v in_o we_o such_o a_o abhorrence_n of_o that_o which_o have_v occasion_v their_o suffering_n as_o when_o we_o suffer_v the_o like_a pain_n and_o evil_n ourselves_o without_o which_o we_o have_v as_o superficial_a a_o sense_n of_o they_o as_o of_o the_o act_n on_o a_o theatre_n and_o therefore_o to_o give_v we_o the_o more_o lively_a sense_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o inflame_v our_o love_n to_o he_o
and_o to_o work_v in_o we_o the_o great_a detestation_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n god_n think_v fit_a that_o we_o shall_v feel_v in_o our_o soul_n the_o evil_a and_o the_o bitterness_n of_o forsake_v he_o without_o which_o they_o can_v never_o be_v purify_v nor_o come_v to_o see_v god_n ix_o life_n there_o be_v another_o prejudice_n which_o have_v some_o affinity_n to_o this_o and_o which_o the_o generality_n of_o protestant_n be_v prepossess_v with_o and_o that_o be_v because_o she_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v a_o state_n of_o purification_n after_o this_o life_n for_o such_o soul_n as_o be_v true_o convert_v unto_o god_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o whole_o purify_v from_o their_o corruption_n and_o so_o be_v not_o immediate_o capable_a of_o enjoy_v god_n all_o corrupt_a doctrine_n have_v general_o some_o fond_a of_o truth_n with_o which_o they_o mingle_v many_o other_o thing_n that_o tend_v to_o promote_v man_n worldly_a interest_n the_o wealth_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o dependence_n of_o the_o people_n thus_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o have_v found_v a_o purgatory_n in_o a_o place_n near_o to_o hell_n where_o soul_n be_v torment_v by_o a_o material_a fire_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v deliver_v by_o some_o soul-mass_n some_o superstitious_a ceremony_n the_o die_a in_o a_o cordelier_n habit_n and_o a_o thousand_o foppery_n of_o this_o nature_n but_o that_o soul_n which_o die_v true_o convert_v unto_o god_n and_o yet_o have_v not_o attain_v to_o such_o a_o state_n of_o purity_n as_o to_o be_v capable_a of_o enjoy_v he_o 66._o shall_v undergo_v a_o state_n of_o purification_n before_o they_o can_v see_v god_n be_v more_o than_o probable_a the_o sum_n of_o her_o sentiment_n as_o to_o this_o be_v 1._o that_o be_v evident_a none_o can_v enjoy_v god_n who_o be_v not_o in_o a_o state_n of_o so_o perfect_a purity_n that_o there_o remain_v in_o they_o no_o degree_n of_o corruption_n neither_o actual_a nor_o habitual_a for_o no_o unclean_a thing_n can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n there_o be_v no_o fellowship_n between_o light_n and_o darkness_n and_o they_o be_v only_o the_o pure_a in_o heart_n who_o shall_v see_v god_n 2._o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o who_o be_v true_o convert_v unto_o god_n be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n though_o sin_n be_v yet_o in_o he_o and_o the_o old_a adam_n be_v not_o yet_o dead_a if_o a_o person_n full_a of_o sin_n and_o evil_a habit_n be_v in_o his_o heart_n and_o desire_v true_o turn_v unto_o god_n he_o receive_v he_o into_o his_o grace_n though_o his_o habitual_a sin_n be_v not_o yet_o root_v out_o much_o more_o he_o who_o be_v great_o advance_v in_o the_o mortification_n of_o his_o corrupt_a nature_n but_o have_v not_o yet_o attain_v to_o a_o state_n of_o perfect_a purity_n 3._o it_o be_v as_o certain_a that_o conversion_n and_o regeneration_n be_v not_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n the_o first_o be_v the_o turn_v away_o from_o evil_a to_o good_a from_o sin_n to_o god_n the_o second_o be_v the_o renovation_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n a_o creature_n altogether_o new_a who_o will_n be_v whole_o resign_v to_o god_n who_o live_v no_o long_o but_o christ_n live_v in_o it_o 4._o it_o be_v in_o grace_n and_o spiritual_a thing_n as_o it_o be_v in_o nature_n and_o bodily_a thing_n all_o thing_n advance_v to_o their_o perfection_n by_o degree_n and_o not_o in_o a_o instant_a god_n do_v all_o thing_n in_o order_n in_o number_n weight_n and_o measure_n and_o conformable_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o being_n he_o have_v form_v we_o be_v first_o child_n before_o we_o be_v man_n and_o we_o advance_v by_o degree_n to_o the_o stature_n and_o wisdom_n of_o man_n and_o put_v away_o childish_a thing_n but_o if_o the_o child_n come_v forth_o of_o the_o womb_n void_a of_o the_o bodily_a life_n it_o remain_v so_o still_o we_o be_v tell_v of_o child_n and_o youth_n and_o man_n in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o all_o these_o state_n be_v attain_v to_o in_o a_o instant_a in_o the_o spiritual_a life_n no_o more_o than_o in_o the_o bodily_a 5._o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o many_o who_o be_v save_v do_v go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n true_o convert_v unto_o god_n but_o yet_o not_o thorough_o renew_v and_o purify_v and_o as_o on_o the_o one_o hand_n god_n will_v not_o reject_v and_o cast_v away_o such_o soul_n as_o seek_v he_o with_o all_o their_o heart_n so_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n in_o this_o state_n of_o impurity_n they_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o enjoy_v he_o and_o therefore_o god_n in_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n truth_n and_o righteousness_n will_v place_v they_o in_o such_o a_o state_n as_o whereby_o all_o their_o evil_a habit_n may_v be_v whole_o root_v out_o all_o their_o corruption_n subdue_v all_o their_o filthiness_n cleanse_v and_o they_o purify_v as_o god_n be_v pure_a 6._o this_o so_o great_a and_o so_o extraordinary_a a_o change_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v wrought_v in_o a_o instant_a nor_o yet_o without_o most_o sensible_a pain_n and_o labour_n to_o the_o soul_n in_o who_o this_o change_n be_v wrought_v the_o soul_n be_v of_o a_o most_o sensible_a nature_n and_o when_o free_v of_o this_o mortal_a body_n that_o stupefy_v it_o its_o sensibility_n must_v be_v infinite_o more_o lively_a and_o pierce_a and_o therefore_o the_o sentiment_n of_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o glorious_a presence_n of_o god_n which_o it_o ardent_o thirst_v after_o and_o of_o have_v within_o it_o disposition_n repugnant_a to_o this_o enjoyment_n which_o a_o ray_n from_o god_n manifest_v it_o to_o can_v but_o give_v it_o unspeakable_a pain_n and_o anguish_n we_o see_v here_o no_o sensible_a be_v that_o be_v in_o disorder_n can_v be_v restore_v to_o its_o right_a state_n without_o pain_n and_o trouble_v a_o break_a leg_n a_o disjoint_a member_n a_o part_n of_o the_o body_n ulcer_v corrupt_a humour_n can_v be_v rectify_v without_o pain_n and_o trouble_n it_o all_o the_o part_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o a_o body_n be_v dislocate_v corrupt_v and_o disorder_v the_o pain_n and_o trouble_v that_o will_v be_v feel_v in_o the_o restore_n of_o that_o body_n will_v be_v unspeakable_o great_a all_o this_o be_v but_o a_o faint_a image_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o soul_n all_o its_o faculty_n be_v more_o corrupt_v and_o disorder_v than_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o body_n to_o be_v the_o restitution_n of_o which_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o divine_a grace_n can_v be_v perform_v even_o in_o this_o state_n of_o stupidity_n without_o much_o pain_n and_o anguish_n but_o after_o this_o life_n when_o the_o soul_n be_v full_o awaken_v it_o be_v support_v by_o the_o divine_a grace_n to_o undergo_v this_o change_n but_o with_o dolour_n beyond_o comparison_n great_a no_o live_a thing_n can_v pass_v from_o one_o state_n to_o another_o without_o great_a sensibility_n can_v enter_v into_o a_o new_a element_n unto_o which_o it_o be_v not_o entire_o conformable_a without_o suffer_v its_o impression_n with_o pain_n weak_a and_o sickly_a eye_n can_v endure_v great_a light_n without_o pain_n nor_o a_o weak_a body_n strong_a nourishment_n without_o trouble_n so_o a_o soul_n fall_v into_o the_o element_n of_o eternity_n of_o the_o divine_a light_n and_o of_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o divin●_n love_n if_o it_o be_v yet_o weak_a and_o ill_o ●sposed_v if_o i●_n have_v yet_o many_o contrary_a disposition_n many_o thing_n to_o be_v consume_v many_o habit_n to_o 〈…〉_z out_o this_o can_v be_v do_v without_o great_a suffering_n not_o that_o god_n chastise_n in_o wrath_n nor_o that_o he_o descent_n to_o torment_v the_o soul_n but_o that_o the_o soul_n full_a of_o contrary_a disposition_n full_a of_o darkness_n can_v receive_v his_o light_n nor_o feel_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o his_o love_n without_o most_o sensible_a and_o dolorous_a sentiment_n till_o by_o the_o force_n and_o continuance_n of_o these_o impression_n they_o have_v banish_v out_o all_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o divine_a light_n and_o love_n which_o then_o transform_v the_o soul_n whole_o into_o its_o own_o nature_n it_o be_v unreasonable_a to_o oppose_v that_o passage_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n for_o the_o mean_v of_o it_o be_v not_o that_o because_o jesus_n christ_n have_v shed_v his_o blood_n we_o ought_v to_o be_v cleanse_v from_o our_o sin_n without_o mortification_n and_o suffering_n but_o the_o quite_o contrary_a for_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o grace_n that_o he_o have_v merit_v by_o his_o blood_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v purify_v from_o our_o sin_n by_o suffering_n and_o by_o a_o conformity_n to_o his_o sorrow_n and_o death_n and_o
it_o not_o to_o ascribe_v vicious_a passion_n to_o god_n 22._o to_o say_v that_o he_o reprobate_v man_n because_o of_o the_o foresight_n of_o the_o sin_n which_o he_o will_v commit_v after_o his_o creation_n and_o that_o he_o predestinate_v he_o to_o salvation_n foresee_v his_o future_a merit_n have_v god_n need_v of_o man_n merit_n to_o save_v he_o can_v all_o man_n together_o with_o all_o their_o merit_n bring_v one_o ray_n of_o glory_n to_o god_n be_v not_o this_o to_o go_v over_o to_o their_o side_n who_o say_v that_o man_n shall_v be_v elect_v and_o save_v by_o their_o good_a work_n and_o not_o by_o grace_n only_o in_o which_o they_o make_v god_n a_o liar_n who_o have_v promise_v as_o they_o grant_v that_o he_o will_v save_v we_o by_o grace_n to_o say_v that_o god_n do_v not_o create_v man_n for_o damnation_n but_o reprobate_v man_n after_o adam_n sin_n which_o have_v undo_v they_o all_o be_v most_o absurd_a for_o as_o all_o man_n be_v create_v in_o adam_n so_o they_o be_v also_o all_o alike_o fall_v in_o adam_n and_o all_o in_o general_n reprobate_v by_o the_o same_o sin_n of_o adam_n for_o he_o can_v not_o have_v a_o divide_a will_n one_o part_n of_o it_o sound_v and_o another_o damn_a there_o be_v but_o one_o man_n only_o and_o he_o have_v but_o one_o will_n in_o which_o be_v include_v the_o will_n of_o all_o man_n that_o shall_v ever_o arise_v from_o he_o and_o if_o god_n have_v leave_v adam_n in_o the_o reprobated_a state_n wherein_o he_o fall_v all_o man_n have_v equal_o remain_v so_o and_o when_o adam_n receive_v the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o be_v admit_v to_o penitence_n all_o man_n be_v still_o in_o he_o and_o consequent_o all_o be_v restore_v to_o favour_n upon_o condition_n of_o perform_v the_o penitence_n that_o god_n enjoin_v in_o adam_n so_o that_o god_n can_v not_o leave_v one_o part_n of_o man_n in_o the_o curse_n without_o divide_v adam_n and_o appoint_v one_o part_n of_o his_o body_n for_o salvation_n and_o another_o for_o reprobation_n since_o there_o be_v but_o one_o man._n if_o there_o have_v be_v two_o it_o may_v have_v be_v say_v of_o man_n what_o be_v say_v of_o angel_n that_o one_o part_n of_o the_o angel_n be_v damn_v and_o another_o confirm_v in_o grace_n but_o that_o of_o one_o soul_n and_o one_o body_n there_o shall_v proceed_v reprobate_v and_o save_v by_o the_o predestination_n of_o god_n this_o be_v odious_a they_o who_o say_v that_o god_n do_v not_o predestinate_a to_o damnation_n but_o only_o leave_v one_o part_n of_o man_n who_o be_v in_o adam_n in_o damnation_n and_o do_v elect_v another_o part_n to_o salvation_n do_v direct_o contradict_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o scripture_n say_v express_o that_o with_o god_n there_o be_v no_o respect_n of_o person_n how_o can_v he_o then_o predestinate_a one_o part_n of_o man_n to_o salvation_n and_o leave_v the_o other_o part_n into_o the_o damnation_n into_o which_o they_o be_v all_o equal_o plunge_v since_o all_o have_v equal_o sin_v in_o adam_n and_o one_o no_o more_o than_o another_o how_o then_o can_v it_o be_v that_o god_n who_o be_v no_o respecter_n of_o person_n can_v damn_v one_o part_n and_o save_v another_o of_o the_o same_o mass_n of_o person_n which_o have_v equal_o contract_v the_o same_o sin_n without_o injustice_n which_o can_v be_v in_o god_n and_o though_o he_o be_v almighty_a to_o save_v one_o and_o damn_v another_o as_o those_o casuist_n say_v yet_o he_o will_v never_o do_v it_o for_o he_o will_v never_o do_v any_o injustice_n for_o my_o part_n say_v she_o i_o will_v not_o commit_v the_o least_o injustice_n against_o my_o enemy_n not_o against_o the_o devil_n himself_o how_o much_o less_o will_v god_n who_o be_v incomprehensible_o more_o just_a than_o i_o do_v such_o a_o injustice_n as_o to_o damn_v one_o and_o save_v another_o of_o the_o person_n who_o have_v commit_v the_o same_o fault_n even_o though_o it_o be_v in_o his_o power_n they_o say_v may_v not_o a_o man_n do_v with_o his_o own_o good_n what_o he_o will_v how_o much_o more_o may_v god_n dispose_v of_o man_n as_o he_o please_v who_o absolute_o belong_v to_o he_o and_o none_o can_v ask_v he_o why_o he_o save_v one_o and_o let_v another_o perish_v this_o say_v she_o seem_v a_o weak_a argument_n even_o in_o the_o comparison_n for_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o a_o man_n can_v do_v with_o his_o good_n what_o he_o please_v he_o ought_v to_o use_v they_o according_a to_o justice_n and_o reason_n and_o if_o he_o do_v otherwise_o he_o will_v bear_v his_o punishment_n before_o god_n who_o will_v not_o suffer_v injustice_n nor_o we_o to_o abuse_v our_o good_n without_o call_v we_o to_o a_o account_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n how_o much_o more_o will_v god_n dispose_v of_o man_n just_o even_o though_o they_o belong_v to_o he_o how_o much_o less_o can_v he_o commit_v this_o injustice_n of_o damn_v one_o and_o save_v another_o of_o those_o who_o have_v fall_v into_o the_o same_o fault_n and_o be_v equal_o guilty_a it_o be_v true_a god_n be_v almighty_a and_o can_v do_v what_o he_o will_v but_o he_o can_v never_o will_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n unjust_o as_o this_o will_v be_v which_o can_v not_o be_v without_o respect_n of_o person_n and_o this_o can_v be_v in_o god_n to_o say_v that_o he_o express_o predestinate_v one_o part_n of_o they_o to_o damnation_n be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o have_v not_o so_o much_o righteousness_n in_o himself_o as_o that_o which_o he_o require_v of_o man_n for_o he_o say_v to_o they_o love_v your_o enemy_n do_v good_a to_o they_o that_o hate_v you_o this_o counsel_n will_v have_v have_v no_o authority_n if_o he_o himself_o have_v reprobate_v those_o who_o be_v become_v his_o enemy_n this_o absolute_a reprobation_n will_v not_o be_v good_a but_o the_o great_a evil_n that_o can_v be_v imagine_v how_o can_v he_o command_v man_n to_o do_v good_a to_o their_o enemy_n when_o he_o himself_o will_v do_v so_o great_a and_o eternal_a a_o evil_n for_o the_o fault_n they_o have_v commit_v against_o he_o and_o that_o while_o they_o be_v yet_o in_o a_o state_n of_o penitence_n as_o they_o be_v during_o this_o life_n where_o reprobation_n shall_v never_o have_v place_n since_o till_o the_o very_a last_o instant_a they_o may_v find_v mercy_n and_o pardon_n this_o reprobation_n can_v only_o have_v place_n after_o death_n and_o not_o during_o this_o life_n because_o this_o be_v the_o time_n of_o penitence_n in_o which_o if_o man_n be_v certain_o reprobate_v they_o can_v have_v no_o part_n and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o very_a rigorous_a and_o unjust_a thing_n to_o oblige_v those_o to_o penitence_n who_o he_o absolute_o resolve_v to_o damn_v man_n it_o seem_v confound_v the_o time_n when_o they_o speak_v of_o predestination_n and_o take_v the_o present_a for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v for_o at_o the_o judgement_n god_n will_v separate_v two_o mass_n the_o one_o of_o elect_n the_o other_o of_o reprobate_n who_o shall_v then_o assure_o be_v damn_v because_o the_o time_n of_o penitence_n will_v then_o be_v pass_v but_o during_o this_o life_n there_o can_v be_v no_o predestinate_v reprobate_n if_o god_n have_v reprobate_v the_o wicked_a to_o damnation_n he_o will_v not_o give_v they_o so_o many_o secret_a and_o inward_a warning_n to_o turn_v they_o unto_o he_o as_o all_o sinner_n may_v know_v by_o experience_n that_o even_o when_o by_o sin_n they_o have_v turn_v away_o from_o god_n they_o feel_v how_o oft_o he_o recal_v they_o by_o many_o occasion_n and_o by_o check_n of_o conscience_n all_o the_o soul_n who_o be_v damn_v have_v be_v often_o admonish_v by_o god_n both_o inward_o and_o outward_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n how_o often_o do_v he_o admonish_v pharaoh_n and_o other_o wicked_a man_n if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o god_n have_v reprobate_v they_o he_o will_v not_o have_v be_v sincere_a in_o give_v they_o so_o many_o admonition_n to_o turn_v they_o from_o their_o wickedness_n or_o at_o least_o they_o be_v all_o vain_a admonition_n since_o be_v predestinate_v to_o evil_a it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o do_v good_n must_v god_n tempt_v man_n or_o render_v they_o more_o guilty_a than_o otherwise_o they_o will_v have_v be_v of_o themselves_o god_n have_v declare_v that_o as_o he_o live_v he_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o the_o death_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o that_o the_o wicked_a man_n turn_v from_o his_o way_n and_o live_v and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o willing_a that_o any_o shall_v perish_v god_n then_o shall_v not_o be_v sincere_a in_o his_o word_n if_o he_o have_v predestinate_v some_o soul_n to_o damnation_n which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o god_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o always_o faithful_a in_o his_o promise_n
and_o no_o soon_o be_v a_o sinner_n convert_v but_o he_o receive_v he_o with_o joy_n according_a to_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o prodigal_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v there_o be_v joy_n in_o heaven_n at_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n more_o than_o over_o ninety_o and_o nine_o righteous_a person_n all_o this_o show_v that_o god_n be_v so_o far_o from_o predestinate_v any_o soul_n to_o damnation_n that_o even_o he_o himself_o come_v to_o seek_v and_o to_o save_v those_o who_o will_v damn_v themselves_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o good_a shepherd_n that_o leave_v his_o many_o sheep_n to_o go_v and_o seek_v the_o one_o sheep_n that_o have_v go_v astray_o and_o bring_v it_o back_o on_o his_o shoulder_n with_o joy_n after_o all_o this_o who_o can_v doubt_v that_o god_n have_v create_v we_o all_o for_o salvation_n and_o none_o for_o damnation_n which_o proceed_v only_o from_o man_n self-will_a and_o not_o at_o all_o from_o the_o predestination_n or_o presence_n of_o god_n this_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n to_o damnation_n be_v she_o say_v a_o most_o blasphemous_a and_o dangerous_a doctrine_n rob_v god_n of_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o he_o shock_n all_o his_o attribute_n of_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n render_v he_o very_o unlovely_a to_o his_o creature_n give_v those_o occasion_n who_o think_v they_o be_v reprobate_v to_o spend_v all_o their_o life_n in_o blaspheme_a god_n for_o create_v they_o to_o damnation_n for_o no_o fault_n of_o they_o before_o they_o have_v a_o be_v and_o not_o rather_o leave_v they_o into_o nothing_o and_o discourage_v they_o from_o all_o endeavour_n of_o become_v better_a since_o of_o necessity_n they_o must_v be_v damn_v however_o and_o it_o encourage_v those_o who_o think_v they_o be_v predestinate_v to_o salvation_n to_o a_o libertine_n kind_a of_o life_n since_o they_o be_v persuade_v that_o notwithstanding_o of_o this_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o god_n will_v some_o time_n or_o other_o bring_v they_o to_o repentance_n it_o seem_v man_n have_v take_v up_o these_o sentiment_n that_o they_o may_v attribute_v to_o god_n the_o cause_n of_o their_o damnation_n and_o not_o to_o themselves_o which_o be_v a_o horrible_a pride_n and_o blasphemy_n or_o to_o flatter_v their_o wickedness_n in_o excuse_v it_o by_o adam_n sin_n and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o fulfil_v the_o penitence_n that_o god_n have_v enjoin_v they_o by_o he_o and_o be_v full_a of_o passion_n themselves_o without_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n they_o will_v give_v authority_n to_o their_o wickedness_n by_o make_v a_o god_n to_o go_v before_o they_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o passion_n and_o as_o they_o see_v those_o who_o rule_n over_o man_n do_v according_a to_o their_o inclination_n disgrace_n or_o favour_v they_o so_o they_o will_v make_v god_n as_o partial_a say_v that_o he_o damn_v some_o and_o save_v other_o according_a to_o his_o pleasure_n which_o will_v never_o be_v for_o god_n be_v no_o more_o subject_n to_o passion_n than_o to_o change_n yet_o nevertheless_o man_n be_v ready_a to_o colour_v this_o doctrine_n with_o passage_n from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n especial_o some_o expression_n misunderstand_v in_o the_o epistle_n of_o st._n paul_n the_o apostle_n peter_n when_o he_o touch_v this_o very_a subject_n and_o tell_v we_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o long-suffering_a of_o god_n because_o he_o be_v not_o willing_a that_o any_o shall_v perish_v but_o that_o all_o shall_v come_v to_o repentance_n he_o adduce_n st._n paul_n testimony_n to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o have_v say_v the_o same_o in_o his_o epistle_n but_o withal_o warn_v we_o that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n in_o they_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v which_o the_o unstable_a wrist_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n point_v out_o it_o seem_v to_o this_o very_a subject_n the_o necessary_a duty_n of_o christianity_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o other_o thing_n can_v be_v well_o understand_v but_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n that_o indict_v they_o and_o the_o rule_n already_o mention_v for_o interpret_n the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v be_v of_o great_a use_n viz._n that_o we_o so_o interpret_v it_o as_o may_v consist_v with_o the_o know_a perfection_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o may_v lead_v we_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o to_o a_o sense_n of_o our_o own_o nothingness_n and_o if_o there_o be_v multitude_n of_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o do_v plain_o lead_v we_o to_o this_o and_o some_o few_o that_o be_v apt_a to_o be_v wrest_v to_o a_o sense_n contrary_a to_o all_o these_o we_o ought_v certain_o to_o interpret_v they_o by_o those_o plain_a passage_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o do_v clear_o represent_v the_o perfection_n of_o god_n thus_o she_o instance_v in_o that_o expression_n jacob_n have_v i_o love_v and_o esau_n have_v i_o hate_v and_o make_v appear_v that_o to_o take_v it_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o irrespective_n and_o absolute_a predestination_n and_o reprobation_n from_o all_o eternity_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o the_o other_o plain_a direction_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o show_n that_o god_n have_v no_o respect_n of_o person_n she_o say_v that_o all_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v figure_n of_o the_o new_a and_o that_o jacob_n and_o esau_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o a_o person_n sanctify_v and_o of_o he_o who_o live_v according_a to_o corrupt_a nature_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o love_v its_o god_n and_o the_o soul_n that_o love_v itself_o this_o be_v the_o esau_n and_o jacob_n which_o the_o scripture_n understand_v by_o those_o twin_n come_v from_o one_o womb_n for_o all_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v since_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n bring_v with_o they_o into_o the_o world_n the_o good_a spirit_n of_o jacob_n and_o the_o evil_a of_o esau_n for_o god_n give_v adam_n his_o good_a spirit_n when_o he_o create_v he_o and_o thereafter_o the_o devil_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o will_n of_o adam_n and_o eve_n produce_v there_o his_o evil_a spirit_n so_o that_o those_o two_o be_v engender_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o all_o man_n before_o they_o come_v out_o of_o the_o womb_n they_o reside_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o freewill_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o and_o there_o struggle_v before_o they_o be_v in_o a_o state_n to_o do_v good_a or_o evil_a as_o jacob_n and_o esau_n do_v in_o their_o mother_n womb_n which_o of_o they_o shall_v get_v out_o first_o all_o man_n proceed_v from_o adam_n do_v derive_v from_o he_o all_o his_o quality_n by_o nature_n and_o grace_n as_o the_o seed_n and_o plant_n must_v still_o be_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o tree_n and_o stock_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v a_o inclination_n to_o good_a be_v the_o instinct_n he_o retain_v ●_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o a_o inclination_n to_o evil_a the_o instinct_n which_o he_o retain_v from_o the_o corruption_n of_o his_o corrupt_a nature_n so_o these_o two_o spirit_n live_v in_o man_n before_o they_o be_v bear_v as_o we_o see_v the_o natural_a instinct_n of_o beast_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v form_v as_o a_o duckling_n come_v out_o of_o the_o shell_n can_v swim_v and_o duck_v in_o the_o water_n without_o be_v teach_v by_o its_o mother_n so_o this_o evil_a spirit_n of_o esau_n give_v all_o man_n this_o natural_a instinct_n to_o evil_a which_o they_o still_o follow_v if_o the_o spirit_n of_o jacob_n do_v not_o constrain_v they_o to_o good_a and_o hinder_v they_o from_o evil._n hence_o come_v the_o war_n which_o man_n feel_v throughout_o all_o his_o life_n and_o according_a to_o the_o victory_n so_o be_v his_o eternal_a lot_n this_o evil_a spirit_n of_o esau_n always_o get_v first_o out_o of_o the_o womb_n of_o our_o freewill_n which_o be_v rather_o incline_v to_o the_o thing_n we_o see_v than_o to_o the_o good_a that_o be_v invisible_a the_o pleasure_n of_o our_o sense_n rather_o than_o the_o divine_a and_o inward_a pleasure_n which_o we_o can_v perceive_v but_o at_o a_o great_a distance_n and_o through_o darkness_n this_o we_o can_v hinder_v till_o we_o have_v attain_v the_o use_n of_o reason_n when_o we_o ought_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o labour_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o jacob_n may_v get_v the_o uppermost_a in_o despite_n of_o wicked_a esau_n those_o thing_n be_v true_a both_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o these_o two_o child_n and_o in_o that_o of_o the_o two-spirit_n but_o man_n not_o understand_v the_o scripture_n do_v wrest_v and_o explain_v they_o to_o a_o sense_n dishonourable_a to_o god_n and_o blasphemous_a of_o he_o xi_o freewill_n but_o it_o may_v be_v say_v if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o predestination_n how_o then_o come_v any_o man_n to_o be_v damn_v how_o come_v sin_n into_o the_o world_n
himself_o have_v still_o his_o self_n will_v to_o fight_v against_o even_o to_o death_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v our_o life_n be_v a_o continual_a warfare_n and_o jesus_n christ_n make_v appear_v sufficient_o that_o he_o have_v his_o self-will_a to_o resist_v even_o to_o death_n when_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o life_n he_o yet_o pray_v not_o my_o will_n but_o thy_o will_n father_n be_v do_v but_o if_o you_o can_v understand_v these_o thing_n say_v she_o leave_v they_o for_o those_o who_o shall_v understand_v they_o take_v only_o of_o my_o write_n what_o be_v good_a and_o profitable_a for_o your_o soul_n and_o suspend_v your_o judgement_n as_o to_o the_o rest_n till_o god_n give_v you_o light_n for_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n in_o they_o which_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o many_o to_o understand_v and_o it_o be_v far_o better_a to_o know_v well_o how_o to_o love_v god_n than_o how_o to_o speak_v well_o of_o virtue_n thus_o it_o appear_v with_o what_o force_n and_o evidence_n she_o advance_v this_o sentiment_n this_o and_o yet_o how_o far_o she_o be_v from_o require_v a_o belief_n of_o it_o from_o all_o as_o of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n how_o clear_o she_o show_v that_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o dishonour_v jesus_n christ_n or_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o purity_n in_o that_o state_n of_o trial_n and_o temptation_n to_o which_o he_o voluntary_o subject_v himself_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o manifest_v the_o greatness_n and_o constancy_n of_o his_o love_n to_o god_n the_o ardency_n of_o his_o charity_n for_o man_n the_o firmness_n of_o his_o adherence_n to_o god_n amid_o all_o temptation_n the_o value_n of_o his_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o we_o and_o the_o encouragement_n he_o have_v give_v we_o by_o his_o example_n to_o resist_v all_o temptation_n and_o to_o follow_v his_o step_n and_o to_o depend_v on_o he_o for_o succour_n and_o compassion_n since_o we_o have_v not_o a_o highpriest_n who_o can_v be_v touch_v with_o the_o feel_n of_o our_o infirmity_n 15._o but_o be_v in_o all_o point_v tempt_v like_a as_o we_o be_v yet_o without_o sin_n in_o this_o passage_n we_o see_v also_o how_o express_o she_o assert_v our_o redemption_n by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n they_o who_o desire_v this_o matter_n handle_v at_o more_o length_n may_v find_v it_o in_o oecon._n diu._n part_n 5._o p._n 21_o to_o 60._o and_o in_o the_o accessary_a letter_n abovementioned_a i_o shall_v here_o only_o add_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o stumble_v at_o harsh_a expression_n when_o we_o know_v the_o main_a intent_n of_o they_o as_o st._n paul_n say_v christ_n be_v make_v a_o curse_n and_o sin_n which_o seem_v most_o harsh_a there_o be_v a_o ambiguity_n in_o the_o word_n evil_a corrupt_a and_o corruption_n which_o may_v either_o signify_v sin_n itself_o or_o the_o effect_n and_o consequence_n of_o it_o so_o the_o will_n signify_v sometime_o the_o superior_a faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n sometime_o the_o bent_n and_o inclination_n of_o sensible_a nature_n to_o please_v itself_o and_o in_o this_o last_o sense_n one_o may_v have_v a_o self-will_a evil_n and_o corrupt_a yet_o without_o sin_v when_o he_o resist_v it_o so_o the_o sum_n of_o her_o sentiment_n be_v that_o jesus_n christ_n take_v on_o he_o not_o the_o act_n of_o evil_a or_o sin_n but_o the_o impulsion_n the_o inclination_n the_o temptation_n weakness_n of_o the_o inferior_a will_n of_o sensible_a nature_n not_o to_o consent_v to_o it_o in_o any_o thing_n but_o to_o resist_v it_o and_o to_o make_v all_o these_o die_n in_o himself_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o his_o eternal_a light_n and_o by_o mean_n most_o contrary_a to_o the_o inclination_n of_o sensible_a nature_n that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o help_n and_o encourage_v his_o brethren_n to_o the_o same_o fight_n and_o victory_n xvii_o infant_n to_o some_o her_o sentiment_n concern_v the_o state_n of_o child_n before_o they_o have_v attain_v the_o use_n of_o their_o reason_n be_v no_o small_a stumble_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o will_n of_o child_n be_v bind_v up_o in_o the_o will_n of_o the_o parent_n till_o they_o have_v attain_v the_o use_n of_o their_o reason_n and_o can_v use_v their_o own_o freewill_n themselves_o etc._n than_o they_o be_v free_a to_o choose_v good_a or_o evil_a and_o to_o be_v save_v or_o damn_v themselves_o according_a to_o this_o choice_n but_o before_o they_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n this_o choice_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o their_o parent_n who_o may_v save_v or_o damn_v they_o even_o as_o they_o can_v give_v they_o natural_a life_n or_o death_n because_o of_o the_o strict_a union_n and_o sympathy_n between_o the_o body_n of_o the_o mother_n and_o of_o the_o child_n in_o the_o womb._n if_o she_o take_v in_o poison_n the_o child_n die_v if_o physic_n it_o be_v heal_v for_o these_o two_o body_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substance_n divide_v into_o two_o part_n this_o be_v true_a also_o as_o to_o the_o soul_n so_o that_o if_o a_o mother_n give_v the_o child_n in_o her_o womb_n to_o the_o devil_n it_o be_v he_o till_o be_v come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n it_o resist_v the_o devil_n renounce_v he_o with_o its_o freewill_n and_o abjure_v its_o evil_a inclination_n to_o become_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o if_o father_n or_o mother_n be_v true_a christian_n or_o person_n regenerate_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n undoubted_o they_o will_v produce_v also_o christian_a child_n in_o this_o regeneration_n and_o till_o they_o have_v attain_v the_o use_n of_o their_o reason_n they_o will_v always_o be_v god_n by_o the_o freewill_n of_o their_o parent_n but_o if_o they_o become_v wicked_a of_o their_o own_o will_n after_o this_o they_o be_v free_a to_o do_v it_o and_o their_o parent_n can_v hinder_v they_o i_o know_v many_o doubt_n of_o a_o child_n die_v in_o infancy_n can_v be_v damn_v but_o it_o be_v for_o want_v of_o divine_a light_n that_o they_o do_v not_o comprehend_v the_o work_n of_o god_n with_o who_o it_o be_v as_o just_a to_o damn_v the_o child_n of_o a_o wicked_a one_o as_o it_o be_v to_o save_v the_o child_n of_o a_o just_a man_n for_o he_o have_v unite_v inseparable_o the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n to_o that_o of_o the_o child_n as_o he_o have_v unite_v the_o body_n of_o the_o child_n with_o that_o of_o the_o mother_n and_o if_o they_o will_v condemn_v this_o for_o a_o injustice_n they_o may_v as_o well_o hold_v it_o a_o injustice_n that_o all_o man_n be_v fall_v in_o adam_n which_o will_v be_v a_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n he_o create_v at_o the_o beginning_n all_o man_n in_o adam_n as_o he_o do_v all_o the_o tree_n of_o one_o kind_n in_o the_o first_o tree_n of_o that_o kind_n etc._n etc._n and_o all_o thing_n with_o seed_n for_o to_o produce_v each_o one_o their_o like_a which_o will_v never_o change_v for_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v eternal_a be_v create_v by_o a_o eternal_a god_n and_o man_n not_o be_v capable_a of_o use_v this_o freewill_n in_o his_o childhood_n of_o necessity_n it_o must_v subsist_v somewhere_o to_o be_v preserve_v till_o it_o may_v reside_v in_o the_o person_n for_o who_o it_o be_v create_v as_o we_o see_v the_o freewill_n of_o all_o man_n be_v in_o the_o freewill_n of_o adam_n since_o all_o be_v partaker_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o misery_n that_o he_o bring_v upon_o man_n for_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o god_n can_v not_o have_v give_v to_o man_n a_o inclination_n to_o evil_a which_o he_o feel_v from_o his_o birth_n nor_o the_o misery_n of_o body_n and_o mind_n in_o which_o he_o find_v himself_o for_o god_n be_v all_o good_a can_v do_v any_o evil_n and_o we_o must_v of_o necessity_n conclude_v that_o the_o free-will_n of_o man_n be_v in_o the_o freewill_n of_o adam_n when_o he_o sin_v and_o since_o all_o christian_n believe_v that_o all_o man_n sin_v in_o adam_n why_o ought_v they_o not_o by_o the_o same_o consequence_n to_o believe_v that_o child_n sin_n in_o their_o parent_n or_o be_v damn_v in_o they_o the_o catholic_n believe_v that_o all_o child_n be_v save_v provide_v they_o be_v baptize_v and_o that_o those_o child_n shall_v be_v damn_v who_o shall_v die_v without_o baptism_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o endure_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n as_o those_o who_o sin_n with_o their_o freewill_n it_o be_v true_a as_o in_o paradise_n there_o be_v diverse_a degree_n of_o glory_n signify_v by_o those_o word_n of_o scripture_n which_o say_v in_o god_n house_n there_o be_v many_o mansion_n there_o be_v also_o diverse_a punishment_n in_o hell_n but_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o all_o child_n die_v without_o outward_a baptism_n shall_v be_v
damn_v for_o this_o be_v but_o a_o testimony_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o the_o faithful_a christian_a have_v in_o his_o soul_n which_o he_o declare_v to_o all_o man_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o water_n of_o outward_a baptism_n but_o if_o this_o live_a faith_n be_v not_o in_o the_o man_n soul_n this_o outward_a baptism_n will_v serve_v he_o for_o nothing_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o anabaptist_n will_v not_o baptize_v child_n but_o they_o themselves_o seem_v to_o have_v no_o more_o faith_n when_o they_o be_v grow_v up_o than_o when_o they_o be_v child_n for_o the_o scripture_n say_v he_o who_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n do_v the_o work_n that_o he_o do_v which_o they_o do_v not_o which_o show_v they_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o he_o though_o they_o be_v not_o baptize_v till_o they_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n so_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n can_v receive_v salvation_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o outward_a baptism_n when_o he_o have_v not_o in_o he_o live_v faith_n or_o his_o parent_n for_o he_o if_o he_o be_v in_o childhood_n the_o catholic_n then_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o believe_v that_o all_o child_n who_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v and_o that_o they_o who_o die_v without_o baptism_n shall_v be_v damn_v since_o this_o depend_v upon_o the_o freewill_n of_o their_o parent_n who_o offer_v willing_o their_o child_n to_o god_n to_o become_v true_a christian_n they_o be_v accept_v of_o god_n by_o the_o will_n of_o their_o parent_n and_o will_v assure_o be_v save_v if_o they_o die_v before_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n and_o if_o other_o by_o their_o parent_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o sin_n and_o die_v in_o their_o nonage_n they_o will_v be_v damn_v by_o the_o evil_a will_n of_o their_o parent_n even_o though_o outward_o they_o receive_v the_o baptism_n of_o water_n which_o without_o faith_n be_v null_a and_o faith_n without_o baptism_n in_o diverse_a case_n do_v save_v we_o see_v with_o what_o strength_n of_o reason_n she_o declare_v this_o sentiment_n and_o though_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o consideration_n of_o our_o case_n in_o adam_n it_o serve_v to_o confirm_v it_o for_o there_o be_v no_o partiality_n in_o god_n no_o respect_n of_o person_n he_o act_v by_o the_o same_o measure_n and_o the_o same_o rule_n with_o creature_n of_o the_o same_o kind_a and_o quality_n the_o offence_n we_o take_v at_o this_o sentiment_n proceed_v from_o our_o ignorance_n of_o god_n and_o his_o work_n and_o the_o desire_n we_o have_v to_o extenuate_v the_o gild_n and_o damnable_a effect_n of_o our_o unchristian_a care_n of_o our_o child_n when_o god_n create_v thing_n at_o first_o etc._n he_o do_v not_o establish_v they_o in_o the_o disorder_n in_o which_o we_o now_o see_v they_o but_o all_o good_a and_o excellent_a in_o their_o respective_a kind_n when_o he_o establish_v the_o propagation_n of_o man_n to_o come_v from_o man_n it_o be_v not_o that_o they_o may_v communicate_v imperfection_n to_o one_o another_o but_o the_o perfection_n he_o have_v give_v they_o and_o god_n wise_a and_o admirable_a conduct_n in_o this_o be_v thus_o in_o some_o measure_n represent_v when_o he_o create_v free_a and_o intelligent_a being_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a but_o that_o at_o first_o they_o must_v be_v frail_a and_o capable_a of_o fall_v away_o for_o than_o they_o have_v no_o habit_n to_o good_a which_o consist_v in_o frequent_o repeat_v act_n and_o be_v acquire_v thereby_o intelligent_a creature_n at_o first_o be_v not_o strengthen_v in_o good_a and_o through_o their_o weakness_n they_o may_v abuse_v their_o liberty_n and_o fall_v away_o god_n have_v see_v this_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o angel_n and_o desire_v to_o settle_v other_o creature_n in_o their_o room_n think_v how_o he_o may_v place_v other_o who_o from_o their_o birth_n or_o be_v may_v have_v habit_n to_o good_a and_o so_o be_v thus_o establish_v in_o it_o may_v not_o so_o easy_o fall_v away_o if_o then_o all_o those_o creature_n shall_v come_v from_o one_o source_n that_o be_v habitual_o good_a than_o they_o who_o come_v of_o they_o shall_v be_v bear_v all_o with_o a_o habitual_a strength_n to_o good_a and_o they_o increase_n and_o strengthen_v their_o good_a habit_n those_o who_o descend_v from_o they_o shall_v be_v yet_o much_o more_o establish_a and_o invincible_a in_o goodness_n and_o so_o on_o by_o a_o continual_a gradation_n but_o to_o accomplish_v this_o charitable_a design_n the_o first_o creature_n of_o that_o kind_n must_v be_v produce_v in_o the_o common_a lot_n without_o a_o habitual_a firmness_n but_o in_o a_o state_n actual_o good_a and_o such_o care_n take_v to_o prevent_v his_o fall_n as_o that_o god_n bodily_a converse_v with_o he_o if_o therefore_o man_n do_v not_o correspond_v to_o this_o care_n it_o be_v pure_o his_o own_o fault_n who_o of_o his_o freewill_n have_v change_v into_o a_o source_n of_o misery_n that_o which_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v a_o source_n of_o communication_n of_o good_n now_o the_o same_o reason_n for_o which_o man_n be_v to_o come_v of_o one_o another_o by_o propagation_n be_v the_o reason_n also_o why_o the_o lot_n of_o child_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o parent_n so_o long_o as_o they_o have_v not_o the_o use_n of_o their_o liberty_n if_o parent_n have_v remain_v in_o the_o perfection_n in_o which_o god_n place_v they_o and_o increase_v in_o it_o according_a to_o his_o establishment_n this_o have_v be_v a_o great_a happiness_n for_o their_o child_n who_o have_v thus_o be_v partaker_n of_o habitual_a good_a even_o from_o their_o original_a but_o if_o the_o contrary_n do_v afterward_o happen_v this_o be_v neither_o from_o the_o decree_n nor_o design_n of_o god_n but_o pure_o the_o fault_n of_o man_n with_o which_o god_n decree_n have_v no_o concern_n now_o suppose_v that_o god_n have_v appoint_v that_o man_n shall_v descend_v of_o one_o another_o by_o propagation_n it_o follow_v immediate_o and_o natural_o without_o the_o intervention_n of_o a_o new_a decree_n that_o the_o lot_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o child_n shall_v be_v bind_v up_o in_o the_o parent_n so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v not_o in_o a_o state_n to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o free_o themselves_o as_o long_o as_o a_o effect_n be_v in_o its_o cause_n it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o with_o its_o cause_n and_o as_o long_o as_o it_o be_v not_o like_a to_o its_o cause_n and_o be_v not_o independent_a on_o it_o it_o be_v also_o in_o it_o for_o it_o go_v out_o from_o it_o but_o according_a as_o it_o have_v itself_o apart_o the_o natural_a and_o necessary_a faculty_n and_o function_n for_o its_o own_o constitution_n and_o for_o its_o individual_a government_n as_o its_o cause_n have_v to_o be_v natural_o complete_a if_o therefore_o it_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o the_o free_a conduct_n of_o itself_o be_v find_v to_o be_v a_o free_a agent_n it_o be_v as_o yet_o in_o regard_n of_o that_o in_o its_o cause_n or_o in_o its_o parent_n not_o that_o for_o some_o year_n after_o a_o child_n be_v bear_v his_o freewill_n be_v yet_o in_o a_o inherent_a manner_n in_o his_o parent_n and_o that_o it_o must_v flow_v from_o they_o into_o the_o child_n when_o he_o be_v far_o advance_v in_o age._n but_o that_o the_o parent_n produce_v a_o body_n and_o a_o soul_n in_o a_o state_n imperfect_a enough_o so_o as_o yet_o to_o need_v their_o care_n and_o operation_n so_o to_o speak_v for_o some_o year_n before_o the_o subject_n which_o hitherto_o be_v imperfect_a become_v perfect_a and_o so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v not_o it_o belong_v yet_o natural_o to_o the_o produce_v cause_n which_o be_v oblige_v to_o have_v a_o care_n of_o it_o as_o a_o part_n of_o itself_o as_o in_o effect_v it_o be_v hence_o also_o come_v the_o right_n which_o father_n and_o mother_n have_v of_o educate_v their_o child_n which_o be_v not_o a_o right_n that_o be_v positive_a or_o may_v be_v dispense_v with_o or_o which_o simple_o regard_v the_o body_n but_o a_o natural_a indispensible_a right_n which_o much_o more_o respect_v the_o soul_n than_o the_o body_n xviii_o reason_n another_o great_a prejudice_n raise_v against_o she_o be_v that_o she_o speak_v so_o mean_o of_o reason_n do_v not_o look_v on_o it_o as_o the_o surpeam_n faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n nor_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o as_o the_o best_a employment_n and_o think_v there_o be_v such_o dangerous_a fruit_n of_o science_n and_o humane_a learning_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o acquire_v they_o in_o the_o thought_n of_o m._n pascal_n there_o be_v i_o remember_v excellent_a reflection_n about_o the_o three_o different_a sort_n of_o grandeur_n which_o have_v their_o different_a empire_n dignity_n honour_n etc._n etc._n and_o may_v be_v call_v divine_a rational_a and_o earthly_a
place_n this_o say_v she_o be_v the_o great_a falsehood_n of_o all_o for_o i_o say_v from_o the_o beginning_n that_o if_o my_o life_n and_o word_n be_v not_o conformable_a to_o the_o say_a scripture_n they_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v i_o 81._o this_o i_o have_v often_o repeat_v since_o and_o say_v it_o over_o again_o now_o and_o on_o all_o fit_a occasion_n i_o tell_v every_o one_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o nourishment_n of_o soul_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o say_v she_o a_o very_a ill_a thing_n to_o forbid_v christian_n the_o read_n of_o the_o bible_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n since_o it_o must_v teach_v we_o all_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o forsake_v etc._n etc._n the_o only_a good_a say_v she_o that_o remain_v in_o the_o world_n be_v that_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n remain_v in_o its_o integrity_n that_o the_o devil_n have_v never_o have_v power_n to_o change_v and_o falsify_v it_o but_o to_o oppose_v it_o only_o by_o the_o gloss_n and_o invention_n of_o man_n who_o endeavour_n to_o accommodate_v it_o to_o the_o modern_a corruption_n but_o in_o vain_a they_o can_v change_v it_o since_o they_o who_o will_v follow_v jesus_n christ_n may_v yet_o find_v it_o entire_a and_o draw_v in_o its_o fountain_n all_o that_o be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o other_o soul_n fill_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o this_o the_o promise_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v fulfil_v that_o hell_n shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o pluck_v it_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o christian_n that_o it_o may_v serve_v for_o food_n and_o nourishment_n to_o all_o true_a believer_n who_o not_o stop_v at_o the_o break_a cistern_n of_o human_a learning_n shall_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o fountain_n of_o live_a water_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o a_o word_n through_o all_o her_o write_n she_o recommend_v the_o read_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n look_n on_o it_o as_o one_o of_o the_o great_a miracle_n of_o providence_n that_o they_o have_v be_v preserve_v uncorrupted_a and_o entire_a to_o be_v a_o stand_a testimony_n against_o the_o professor_n of_o christianity_n while_o their_o life_n be_v a_o flat_a contradiction_n to_o they_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n contain_v in_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o last_o doctrine_n that_o be_v to_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o full_o direct_v we_o the_o way_n to_o eternal_a life_n and_o desire_n that_o her_o life_n and_o doctrine_n may_v be_v examine_v thereby_o and_o no_o regard_n have_v to_o it_o but_o in_o so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v conformable_a thereunto_o and_o that_o she_o aim_v at_o nothing_o but_o to_o persuade_v people_n to_o embrace_v in_o their_o life_n and_o spirit_n the_o life_n and_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n contain_v in_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v true_a she_o do_v not_o give_v herself_o to_o read_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v immediate_o and_o inward_o teach_v by_o god_n the_o same_o truth_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o they_o every_o one_o say_v she_o aught_o to_o use_v the_o mean_n that_o lead_v they_o best_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n because_o the_o way_n to_o this_o love_n be_v divers_a some_o attain_n to_o it_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o read_v serious_o the_o holy_a scripture_n other_o by_o humble_a assiduous_a prayer_n other_o by_o solitude_n and_o retire_n from_o human_a conversation_n and_o so_o of_o many_o other_o it_o be_v of_o small_a moment_n to_o know_v by_o what_o mean_v other_o have_v attain_v to_o this_o love_n of_o god_n provide_v we_o take_v the_o mean_n that_o be_v most_o fit_a for_o we_o to_o attain_v to_o it_o also_o there_o be_v divers_a way_n 18._o as_o there_o be_v divers_a sin_n which_o be_v hindrance_n in_o those_o way_n which_o every_o one_o ought_v to_o oppose_v according_a as_o he_o know_v they_o to_o be_v in_o himself_o without_o offer_v to_o make_v one_o general_a law_n and_o rule_n whereby_o to_o lead_v all_o to_o god_n for_o he_o who_o be_v not_o immediate_o instruct_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n will_v do_v very_o ill_a if_o he_o shall_v not_o make_v use_n of_o the_o read_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o if_o he_o shall_v not_o search_v for_o those_o who_o speak_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o this_o will_v be_v to_o tempt_v god_n to_o will_n that_o he_o shall_v instruct_v all_o man_n immediate_o while_o they_o be_v so_o take_v up_o with_o or_o wed_v to_o the_o affair_n of_o this_o world_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o will_v be_v very_o ill_o do_v if_o one_o shall_v make_v use_n of_o read_v or_o other_o outward_a mean_n when_o he_o have_v withdraw_v from_o all_o creature_n and_o find_v the_o immediate_a conduct_n of_o god_n such_o a_o soul_n will_v oppose_v the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o will_v hinder_v the_o operation_n of_o his_o grace_n if_o it_o shall_v make_v use_n of_o read_v or_o other_o outward_a mean_n because_o in_o this_o state_n it_o ought_v not_o any_o long_o to_o act_n but_o to_o be_v passive_a and_o follow_v the_o spirit_n who_o guide_v it_o it_o without_o operate_a any_o more_o itself_o in_o do_v this_o she_o be_v far_o from_o despise_v or_o reject_v the_o holy_a scripture_n when_o i_o be_o with_o a_o friend_n and_o converse_n with_o he_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o he_o answer_v i_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n we_o will_v not_o then_o make_v use_n of_o write_v or_o letter_n and_o yet_o it_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o i_o reject_v or_o despise_v his_o letter_n this_o way_n of_o communication_n by_o letter_n be_v most_o agreeable_a but_o it_o be_v for_o the_o absent_a they_o who_o see_v and_o converse_v with_o one_o another_o make_v no_o use_n of_o write_v but_o they_o do_v not_o despise_v it_o they_o have_v a_o more_o speedy_a and_o delightful_a way_n of_o communicate_v their_o thought_n thus_o a._n b._n have_v inward_a and_o immediate_a conversation_n with_o god_n have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o to_o know_v his_o will_n she_o learn_v it_o from_o his_o own_o mouth_n and_o enjoy_v his_o presence_n but_o they_o who_o have_v not_o recover_v that_o divine_a conversation_n must_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o outward_a mean_n according_a as_o they_o find_v they_o helpful_a to_o bring_v they_o near_o to_o god_n till_o they_o attain_v to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o himself_o and_o this_o be_v very_o agreeable_a to_o st._n augustin_n doctrine_n in_o his_o excellent_a treatise_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_n he_o 36._o therefore_o who_o be_v establish_v in_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n and_o inviolable_o retain_v they_o need_v not_o the_o scripture_n unless_o it_o be_v to_o instruct_v other_o therefore_o many_o live_v in_o the_o desert_n by_o these_o three_o without_o book_n hence_o i_o think_v that_o in_o they_o be_v already_o fulfil_v that_o which_o be_v say_v whether_o there_o be_v prophecy_n they_o shall_v fail_v whether_o there_o be_v tongue_n they_o shall_v cease_v whether_o there_o be_v knowledge_n it_o shall_v vanish_v away_o xxii_o etc._n that_o she_o declare_v so_o positive_o that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n at_o present_a upon_o earth_n and_o that_o god_n will_v make_v she_o the_o instrument_n of_o renew_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v another_o grievous_a prejudice_n against_o she_o this_o be_v often_o object_v to_o she_o and_o be_v answer_v by_o she_o in_o many_o place_n of_o her_o write_n it_o be_v not_o uncharitableness_n but_o great_a charity_n to_o man_n soul_n that_o move_v she_o to_o declare_v this_o to_o all_o the_o world_n she_o be_v persuade_v that_o none_o be_v true_a christian_n but_o they_o in_o who_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n do_v live_v who_o affection_n and_o desire_n be_v set_v only_o on_o thing_n eternal_a and_o not_o on_o thing_n temporal_a that_o one_o can_v not_o be_v a_o true_a christian_n by_o serve_v god_n and_o mammon_n both_o by_o join_v the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o self-love_n seek_v to_o please_v man_n and_o to_o please_v god_n too_o she_o meet_v with_o many_o of_o good_a inclination_n 155._o but_o none_o who_o be_v true_o regenerate_v she_o do_v well_o as_o she_o say_v to_o tell_v this_o and_o she_o have_v do_v a_o great_a evil_n in_o say_v the_o contrary_a for_o to_o have_v say_v so_o to_o other_o can_v not_o have_v profit_v they_o even_o though_o it_o have_v be_v true_a it_o can_v not_o increase_v their_o holiness_n but_o rather_o give_v they_o occasion_n of_o vainglory_n nature_n be_v tickle_v with_o little_a but_o when_o we_o be_v tell_v that_o we_o be_v not_o true_a christian_n we_o have_v reason_n to_o use_v the_o mean_n to_o become_v so_o and_o to_o humble_v ourselves_o before_o god_n that_o we_o may_v obtain_v his_o grace_n if_o there_o be_v true_a christian_n
render_v the_o scripture_n useless_a to_o give_v way_n to_o a_o private_a spirit_n and_o to_o all_o manner_n of_o confusion_n and_o imposture_n 3._o inspiration_n and_o both_o these_o be_v the_o more_o confirm_v in_o their_o sentiment_n by_o see_v the_o many_o false_a pretender_n to_o divine_a inspiration_n which_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n the_o devil_n study_v always_o to_o ape_n and_o counteract_v god_n and_o since_o he_o can_v easy_o transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n he_o most_o effectual_o undermine_v the_o true_a religion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o appear_v to_o be_v for_o it_o and_o under_o a_o cover_n of_o religion_n he_o insinuate_v into_o man_n mind_n his_o infernal_a quality_n of_o pride_n hypocrisy_n and_o unrighteousness_n and_o one_o of_o the_o disguise_n under_o which_o he_o act_v be_v that_o of_o a_o pretence_n to_o divine_a inspiration_n and_o the_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o this_o he_o have_v do_v in_o all_o age_n both_o before_o and_o since_o the_o come_v of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o raise_v up_o among_o the_o jew_n false_a prophet_n and_o that_o especial_o when_o there_o be_v any_o true_o inspire_v by_o god_n that_o those_o last_o may_v be_v discredit_v and_o despise_v because_o of_o the_o imposture_n of_o the_o other_o and_o this_o be_v also_o one_o of_o the_o artifices_fw-la he_o have_v use_v among_o christian_n through_o all_o the_o age_n of_o the_o church_n and_o particular_o in_o this_o last_o age_n set_v up_o whole_a order_n and_o society_n of_o person_n who_o pretend_v to_o be_v immediate_o enlighten_v and_o guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n though_o the_o quite_o contrary_a appear_v by_o their_o life_n and_o spirit_n and_o thereby_o he_o not_o only_o infatuate_v some_o but_o make_v they_o also_o such_o a_o stumbling-block_n to_o other_o as_o to_o make_v some_o of_o they_o to_o despise_v all_o revelation_n from_o god_n and_o to_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o imposture_n and_o other_o to_o be_v altogether_o prejudice_v against_o any_o who_o may_v be_v true_o inspire_v by_o god_n in_o this_o present_a age_n though_o the_o evidence_n be_v never_o so_o contestable_a and_o convince_v however_o they_o own_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n because_o the_o convince_v reason_n which_o prove_v it_o have_v not_o the_o prejudices_fw-la of_o a_o contrary_a education_n to_o withstand_v they_o and_o thus_o the_o devil_n be_v become_v most_o successful_a in_o disparage_v and_o put_v out_o of_o credit_n with_o the_o wise_a the_o rational_a and_o the_o learned_a all_o immediate_a inspiration_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o this_o age_n of_o the_o world_n though_o it_o be_v ever_o so_o clear_a and_o evident_a iii_o rational_a as_o for_o those_o who_o be_v enemy_n to_o all_o divine_a revelation_n it_o be_v a_o folly_n to_o think_v of_o convince_v they_o that_o god_n have_v be_v please_v to_o communicate_v to_o any_o in_o this_o age_n the_o immediate_a knowledge_n of_o his_o will_n by_o the_o light_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n for_o if_o they_o believe_v not_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n neither_o will_v they_o be_v persuade_v though_o one_o shall_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a yet_o if_o they_o be_v sincere_o and_o true_o rational_a and_o not_o fantastical_o so_o it_o will_v certain_o astonish_v they_o and_o awaken_v their_o consideration_n to_o see_v a_o chain_n of_o sentiment_n so_o well_o connect_v so_o agreeable_a to_o true_a reason_n so_o worthy_a of_o god_n so_o suitable_a to_o his_o divine_a perfection_n so_o clear_o point_v out_o the_o nature_n and_o duty_n of_o man_n the_o great_a end_n of_o his_o be_v and_o the_o true_a way_n to_o prosecute_v it_o so_o plain_o unfolding_a the_o mystery_n of_o providence_n and_o the_o past_a present_a and_o future_a state_n of_o the_o world_n so_o far_o beyond_o all_o that_o ever_o any_o or_o all_o of_o the_o philosopher_n have_v say_v of_o former_a or_o late_a age_n and_o that_o declare_v by_o a_o illiterate_a woman_n void_a of_o all_o study_n and_o learning_n without_o converse_v with_o man_n or_o book_n but_o live_v retire_v from_o the_o world_n in_o a_o continual_a dependence_n upon_o god_n and_o elevation_n of_o her_o spirit_n to_o he_o and_o in_o a_o conformity_n of_o her_o heart_n and_o life_n to_o those_o sentiment_n and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o great_o partial_a and_o prejudice_v they_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v that_o here_o be_v the_o finger_n of_o god_n but_o they_o who_o 〈◊〉_d the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n improbable_a and_o that_o the_o penman_n of_o they_o be_v inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n speak_v of_o old_a time_n as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n though_o there_o be_v then_o false_a prophet_n among_o the_o people_n as_o there_o shall_v be_v now_o false_a teacher_n among_o christian_n they_o can_v neither_o think_v it_o impossible_a nor_o improbable_a that_o god_n shall_v even_o in_o this_o age_n immediate_o enlighten_v and_o guide_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n soul_n true_o deny_v to_o the_o world_n and_o to_o themselves_o and_o whole_o resign_v to_o he_o iv._o matt._n for_o god_n have_v create_v man_n after_o his_o own_o image_n to_o love_v and_o to_o enjoy_v his_o maker_n and_o that_o he_o may_v take_v his_o delight_n with_o man_n his_o soul_n be_v original_o design_v for_o god_n temple_n and_o dwelling-place_n that_o he_o may_v reside_v in_o it_o and_o fill_v it_o with_o his_o light_n and_o love_n and_o though_o man_n by_o turn_v away_o from_o god_n do_v wilful_o deprive_v himself_o of_o this_o happiness_n yet_o through_o the_o merit_n and_o intercession_n of_o jesus_n christ_n god_n have_v pity_n on_o he_o and_o continues_z to_o prosecute_v his_o first_o design_n of_o take_v his_o delight_n with_o he_o and_o this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o his_o outward_a dispensation_n towards_o man._n therefore_o say_v st._n chrysostom_n we_o ought_v in_o all_o thing_n to_o lead_v so_o pure_a a_o life_n as_o that_o we_o shall_v no_o way_n need_v the_o help_n of_o letter_n but_o instead_o of_o they_o shall_v use_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n may_v write_v upon_o the_o table_n of_o our_o heart_n as_o they_o write_v upon_o paper_n but_o since_o we_o have_v thrust_v this_o grace_n from_o we_o let_v we_o at_o least_o make_v use_n of_o the_o second_o mercy_n but_o that_o the_o first_o be_v far_o more_o sublime_a god_n make_v appear_v both_o by_o his_o word_n and_o deed_n for_o he_o speak_v to_o noah_n and_o abraham_n and_o his_o posterity_n and_o to_o joseph_n and_o moses_n not_o by_o scripture_n but_o by_o himself_o because_o he_o find_v their_o heart_n pure_a but_o when_o all_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n do_v degenerate_a into_o the_o sink_v of_o vice_n than_o scripture_n and_o table_n be_v give_v they_o by_o which_o they_o be_v warn_v and_o we_o see_v this_o happen_v not_o only_o to_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o also_o of_o the_o new_a for_o christ_n do_v not_o deliver_v any_o write_n to_o the_o apostle_n but_o instead_o of_o scripture_n promise_v to_o give_v they_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n he_o say_v he_o will_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n and_o that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o this_o be_v far_o better_a than_o the_o other_o hear_v what_o the_o lord_n say_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n will_v make_v a_o new_a covenant_n with_o you_o i_o will_v put_v my_o law_n in_o your_o mind_n and_o write_v they_o in_o your_o heart_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v all_o teach_v of_o god_n st._n paul_n also_o to_o show_v the_o excellency_n of_o this_o say_v he_o have_v receive_v the_o law_n not_o in_o table_n of_o stone_n but_o in_o fleshly_a table_n of_o the_o heart_n but_o because_o in_o process_n of_o time_n many_o have_v stray_v from_o the_o right_a way_n they_o need_v therefore_o again_o that_o warn_v that_o be_v give_v by_o scripture_n consider_v then_o what_o a_o degree_n of_o madness_n it_o be_v that_o when_o we_o ought_v to_o lead_v a_o life_n of_o such_o integrity_n and_o perfection_n as_o not_o to_o need_v scripture_n but_o shall_v yield_v up_o our_o heart_n to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o paper_n to_o be_v write_v upon_o how_o be_v it_o i_o say_v if_o when_o we_o have_v lose_v this_o first_o dignity_n and_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o the_o lesser_a yet_o we_o will_v not_o use_v aright_o even_o this_o second_o remedy_n for_o our_o salvation_n thus_o he_o begin_v the_o preface_n to_o his_o homily_n on_o st._n matt._n show_v that_o if_o man_n heart_n be_v pure_a god_n will_v speak_v inward_o to_o they_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n that_o he_o have_v do_v so_o
will_v tell_v i_o that_o you_o will_v try_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o true_a miracle_n and_o not_o by_o such_o as_o come_v by_o the_o intervention_n of_o the_o devil_n i_o ask_v by_o what_o mean_v you_o shall_v discern_v between_o these_o so_o long_o as_o you_o have_v not_o that_o holy_a spirit_n which_o will_v learn_v you_o all_o truth_n then_o you_o will_v discern_v all_o thing_n and_o will_v not_o need_v to_o ask_v miracle_n to_o know_v if_o another_o be_v guide_v by_o that_o true_a spirit_n for_o faith_n alone_o will_v give_v you_o evidence_n enough_o when_o the_o pharisee_n ask_v miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o he_o have_v do_v some_o they_o say_v present_o he_o have_v a_o devil_n and_o that_o he_o cast_v out_o devil_n by_o the_o power_n of_o beelzebub_n who_o be_v more_o powerful_a than_o the_o inferior_a devil_n do_v you_o not_o think_v that_o the_o same_o will_v happen_v now_o and_o if_o i_o also_o wrought_v miracle_n will_v they_o not_o undoubted_o say_v that_o i_o be_v a_o sorceress_n which_o be_v even_o to_o be_v fear_v since_o now_o there_o be_v no_o more_o need_n of_o miracle_n except_o to_o bewitch_v man_n spirit_n with_o admiration_n our_o faith_n be_v sufficient_o confirm_v and_o the_o gospel_n law_n verify_v there_o be_v nothing_o want_v but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o put_v in_o practice_n and_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o miracle_n to_o assure_v all_o christian_n that_o they_o can_v be_v save_v without_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o since_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v so_o strong_o affirm_v it_o one_o must_v deny_v the_o gospel_n to_o believe_v that_o he_o can_v be_v save_v without_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n see_v he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o way_n and_o that_o he_o who_o enter_v by_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v that_o he_o also_o be_v the_o door_n and_o that_o we_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o by_o he_o what_o miracle_n will_v you_o require_v sir_n from_o one_o who_o do_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o repeat_v the_o same_o word_n which_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n pronounce_v and_o say_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o that_o to_o be_v a_o christian_n we_o must_v have_v the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n i_o have_v do_v no_o ill_a to_o any_o body_n nor_o say_v any_o other_o thing_n in_o substance_n but_o that_o man_n be_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o that_o they_o have_v by_o their_o sin_n draw_v down_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o their_o head_n that_o of_o necessity_n we_o must_v be_v convert_v to_o god_n and_o take_v up_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o otherwise_o we_o be_v not_o true_a christian_n all_o these_o truth_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o become_v silent_a and_o confound_v by_o they_o silent_a in_o that_o they_o can_v bely_v the_o truth_n and_o confound_v to_o see_v that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o god_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o true_a christian_n but_o be_v unwilling_a to_o yield_v to_o this_o truth_n and_o to_o be_v ashamed_a that_o their_o degeneracy_n be_v lay_v open_a they_o will_v not_o be_v silent_a but_o strive_v to_o reproach_v those_o who_o tell_v this_o truth_n and_o tempt_v they_o with_o foreign_a question_n and_o argument_n even_o demand_v of_o they_o outward_a sign_n and_o miracle_n as_o if_o they_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o virtue_n while_o they_o can_v give_v the_o least_o ray_n of_o virtue_n to_o he_o who_o work_v they_o for_o true_a miracle_n come_v from_o god_n and_o not_o from_o the_o person_n that_o do_v they_o who_o be_v only_o his_o instrument_n to_o show_v to_o man_n that_o which_o god_n operate_v so_o that_o you_o can_v be_v assure_v that_o a_o person_n have_v the_o holy_a spirit_n even_o though_o he_o shall_v work_v outward_a miracle_n since_o judas_n do_v they_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o devil_n we_o need_v another_o touchstone_n to_o know_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 26_o for_o st._n paul_n say_v though_o we_o can_v remove_v mountain_n and_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n all_o this_o will_v be_v nothing_o without_o charity_n it_o be_v a_o great_a blindness_n to_o seek_v for_o miracle_n and_o outward_a sign_n that_o we_o may_v believe_v that_o a_o soul_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n it_o be_v better_a to_o search_v in_o the_o scripture_n what_o gift_n and_o fruit_n the_o holy_a spirit_n bring_v always_o along_o with_o he_o and_o observe_v if_o they_o who_o say_v they_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n have_v in_o they_o those_o gift_n and_o fruit_n for_o than_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o be_v possess_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a not_o that_o i_o will_v exclude_v true_a miracle_n from_o soul_n that_o love_v god_n 27._o for_o they_o will_v certain_o do_v they_o in_o this_o present_a time_n as_o much_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v they_o in_o their_o day_n if_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o god_n glory_n who_o will_v always_o do_v the_o will_n of_o those_o who_o love_v he_o in_o all_o time_n and_o place_n but_o i_o have_v say_v all_o this_o to_o make_v appear_v to_o you_o that_o this_o be_v the_o least_o favour_n that_o god_n do_v in_o this_o world_n to_o a_o faithful_a soul_n that_o it_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n or_o of_o do_v miracle_n and_o that_o these_o thing_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v value_v in_o respect_n of_o faith_n and_o charity_n which_o unite_v soul_n to_o god_n these_o be_v true_a miracle_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o their_o neighbour_n they_o restore_v to_o they_o sight_n health_n and_o life_n and_o with_o those_o philosopher_n stone_n of_o live_a faith_n and_o charity_n they_o change_v earthly_a soul_n into_o the_o pure_a gold_n of_o divine_a charity_n these_o be_v the_o true_a miracle_n which_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o this_o fullness_n of_o time_n to_o prove_v the_o force_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o the_o cure_n of_o soul_n more_o worthy_a beyond_o comparison_n than_o mortal_a body_n the_o sum_n of_o what_o she_o say_v on_o this_o head_n be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o every_o one_o who_o be_v immediate_o teach_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n shall_v prove_v the_o same_o by_o outward_a miracle_n that_o they_o be_v necessary_a only_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o a_o new_a doctrine_n that_o she_o declare_v no_o other_o doctrine_n than_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v sufficient_o confirm_v already_o that_o to_o demand_v miracle_n now_o be_v to_o tempt_v god_n and_o to_o expose_v ourselves_o to_o be_v delude_v by_o the_o devil_n who_o we_o be_v tell_v will_n in_o these_o last_o time_n by_o his_o false_a prophet_n do_v sign_n and_o lie_a wonder_n which_o without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n can_v easy_o be_v distinguish_v from_o true_a one_o that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o sure_a touchstone_n of_o one_o being_n guide_v and_o teach_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o the_o gift_n and_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n particular_o live_v faith_n and_o charity_n and_o that_o by_o these_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v great_a miracle_n in_o convert_v and_o heal_v the_o soul_n of_o other_o than_o all_o outward_a miracle_n on_o body_n will_v amount_v to_o and_o that_o in_o these_o last_o time_n god_n will_v manifest_v the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n by_o work_v these_o miracle_n on_o soul_n by_o turn_v they_o away_o from_o thing_n earthly_a and_o temporal_a to_o thing_n heavenly_a and_o eternal_a there_o be_v many_o of_o the_o ancient_a prophet_n of_o who_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o they_o wrought_v miracle_n and_o their_o prophecy_n be_v general_o for_o aftertime_n and_o not_o fulfil_v in_o their_o own_o day_n yet_o the_o people_n be_v bind_v to_o receive_v they_o as_o send_v from_o god_n and_o there_o be_v sufficient_a evidence_n for_o it_o in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o life_n beside_o it_o be_v no_o less_o than_o a_o miracle_n and_o beyond_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n that_o she_o know_v the_o thought_n of_o other_o man_n heart_n and_o their_o inward_a disposition_n not_o that_o she_o always_o do_v so_o but_o when_o god_n think_v fit_a to_o discover_v they_o to_o she_o either_o for_o she_o own_o safety_n or_o for_o the_o good_a of_o other_o this_o be_v ofttimes_o declare_v and_o instance_n give_v of_o it_o not_o only_o by_o herself_o but_o also_o by_o m._n de_fw-fr cort_n poiret_n tiellens_n francken_n and_o many_o other_o the_o manner_n also_o of_o have_v so_o clear_a and_o comprehensive_a a_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a thing_n without_o study_n conference_n meditation_n or_o book_n be_v no_o less_o strange_a
by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o can_v contradict_v himself_o for_o god_n be_v yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n the_o same_o unchangeable_a and_o always_o equal_a to_o himself_o from_o who_o no_o variableness_n nor_o contradiction_n can_v proceed_v but_o if_o her_o adversary_n will_v examine_v all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n after_o the_o manner_n he_o have_v do_v her_o write_n 8._o he_o will_v find_v many_o more_o such_o seem_a contradiction_n in_o the_o bible_n for_o indeed_o there_o be_v many_o more_o according_a to_o the_o narrow_a apprehension_n and_o shallow_a judgement_n of_o man_n who_o be_v earthly_a and_o carnal_a can_v understand_v spiritual_a thing_n or_o those_o indict_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o they_o forge_v in_o their_o little_a brain_n error_n out_o of_o most_o solid_a truth_n and_o contradiction_n out_o of_o the_o great_a conformity_n from_o hence_o have_v spring_v so_o many_o error_n schism_n and_o division_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n because_o every_o one_o will_v understand_v the_o scripture_n after_o their_o own_o mode_n they_o have_v invent_v so_o many_o different_a religion_n and_o each_o say_v this_o be_v found_v on_o the_o holy_a scripture_n though_o very_o often_o they_o have_v different_a sentiment_n and_o contradict_v one_o another_o in_o the_o same_o truth_n while_o every_o one_o think_v he_o understand_v they_o aright_o though_o they_o be_v uncapable_a of_o understand_v divine_a thing_n for_o the_o same_o spirit_n that_o indict_v the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v the_o understanding_n of_o they_o and_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n undertake_v to_o do_v it_o he_o still_o fall_v from_o one_o error_n into_o another_o and_o lose_v himself_o in_o that_o great_a ocean_n of_o divine_a wisdom_n which_o he_o can_v understand_v nor_o comprehend_v it_o do_v not_o trouble_v i_o that_o there_o appear_v to_o be_v contradiction_n in_o my_o write_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n since_o they_o will_v hardly_o find_v two_o prophet_n speak_v the_o same_o word_n upon_o the_o same_o matter_n and_o the_o four_o evangelist_n do_v not_o relate_v the_o same_o thing_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n must_v it_o therefore_o be_v say_v that_o there_o be_v contradiction_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o this_o benjamin_n furly_n say_v there_o be_v in_o my_o write_n god_n command_v to_o honour_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o jesus_n christ_n say_v we_o must_v hate_v father_n and_o mother_n add_v that_o he_o who_o do_v not_o forsake_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o all_o thing_n can_v be_v his_o disciple_n how_o will_v this_o benjamin_n reconcile_v these_o two_o passage_n for_o to_o honour_v father_n and_o mother_n be_v a_o thing_n quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o hate_v and_o forsake_v they_o and_o jesus_n christ_n say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o come_v to_o bring_v peace_n upon_o earth_n but_o war_n between_o father_n and_o son_n etc._n etc._n and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v my_o peace_n i_o give_v you_o in_o one_o place_n he_o say_v drunkard_n and_o glutton_n shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v that_o that_o which_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n do_v not_o defile_v the_o soul_n truth_n be_v invincible_a and_o do_v not_o change_n for_o all_o that_o may_v be_v thunder_v against_o it_o but_o it_o be_v the_o more_o establish_v when_o it_o be_v oppose_v and_o contradict_v by_o ignorant_a person_n as_o this_o benjamin_n who_o can_v discern_v truth_n from_o lie_v and_o from_o contradiction_n he_o confound_v one_o time_n with_o another_o and_o will_v needs_o give_v general_a rule_n for_o all_o sort_n of_o occasion_n and_o when_o these_o rule_n be_v not_o punctual_o observe_v at_o all_o time_n he_o think_v that_o person_n do_v change_n or_o contradict_v themselves_o and_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o live_v upon_o earth_n he_o will_v have_v often_o reprove_v he_o as_o at_o present_a he_o do_v i_o for_o when_o jesus_n christ_n be_v afraid_a of_o his_o enemy_n he_o bid_v his_o apostle_n buy_v sword_n and_o if_o they_o want_v money_n to_o do_v it_o that_o they_o shall_v sell_v their_o garment_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o command_v to_o put_v up_o the_o sword_n and_o threaten_v that_o he_o who_o strike_v with_o the_o sword_n shall_v be_v strike_v by_o it_o if_o this_o benjamin_n have_v be_v in_o s._n peter_n place_n when_o he_o cut_v off_o malchus_n ear_n he_o will_v certain_o have_v be_v displease_v at_o jesus_n christ_n and_o blame_v he_o for_o inconstancy_n and_o contradiction_n because_o he_o can_v not_o discern_v the_o time_n when_o he_o ought_v to_o strike_v and_o when_o he_o ought_v to_o forbear_v he_o reproach_n i_o that_o i_o have_v write_v somewhere_o that_o i_o may_v say_v something_o that_o be_v not_o true_a without_o lie_v or_o sin_v he_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o there_o be_v material_a lie_n which_o be_v not_o sin_n he_o will_v have_v word_n precise_o speak_v which_o be_v true_a according_a to_o his_o caprice_n for_o it_o be_v a_o chief_a article_n of_o the_o quaker_n to_o justify_v themselves_o before_o man_n for_o they_o study_v precise_a word_n that_o they_o may_v not_o commit_v a_o material_a lie_n and_o they_o dare_v not_o call_v a_o christian_a by_o that_o name_n without_o add_v as_o they_o call_v they_o fear_v to_o lie_v by_o call_v he_o a_o christian_a when_o he_o be_v not_o true_o such_o for_o my_o part_n i_o be_o far_o from_o these_o maxim_n for_o i_o never_o regard_v the_o pronunciation_n of_o word_n but_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o i_o advance_v if_o i_o express_v they_o in_o this_o or_o that_o term_n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o provide_v i_o deceive_v no_o body_n and_o that_o i_o make_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v understand_v which_o i_o will_v signify_v but_o there_o be_v this_o difference_n between_o the_o spirit_n that_o guide_v i_o and_o the_o spirit_n that_o guide_v that_o sect_n that_o they_o will_v be_v esteem_v by_o man_n for_o good_a man_n and_o for_o the_o people_n of_o god_n whereas_o i_o be_o not_o concern_v how_o they_o esteem_v i_o for_o i_o be_o content_a with_o the_o testimony_n of_o my_o own_o conscience_n and_o seek_v not_o the_o approbation_n of_o man_n far_o less_o will_v i_o say_v any_o word_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v think_v that_o i_o be_o just_a and_o guide_v by_o god_n it_o suffice_v i_o that_o i_o know_v it_o and_o god_n know_v it_o for_o it_o be_v write_v he_o who_o will_v please_v man_n be_v not_o the_o servant_n of_o jesus_n christ_n therefore_o i_o will_v free_o speak_v a_o material_a lie_n when_o i_o believe_v the_o thing_n be_v true_a for_o example_n i_o have_v often_o say_v that_o i_o be_v two_o year_n young_a than_o i_o find_v i_o be_o since_o i_o cause_v one_o to_o search_v the_o register_n of_o my_o baptism_n i_o grant_v i_o have_v thus_o make_v many_o material_a lie_n yet_o without_o sin_v thereby_o or_o lie_v since_o a_o lie_n be_v a_o deceit_n or_o falseness_n of_o the_o heart_n that_o kill_v the_o soul_n which_o i_o can_v not_o do_v by_o say_v that_o i_o be_v two_o year_n young_a for_o i_o aim_v not_o thereby_o to_o deceive_v any_o body_n nor_o to_o speak_v against_o the_o truth_n i_o have_v utter_v many_o such_o material_a lie_n i_o love_v rather_o to_o possess_v the_o essence_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o bottom_n of_o my_o soul_n than_o to_o speak_v verbal_o true_a word_n through_o hypocrisy_n for_o what_o else_o be_v it_o to_o call_v man_n by_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n and_o to_o add_v to_o it_o as_o they_o call_v they_o than_o hypocrisy_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o truth_n such_o as_o the_o jew_n have_v when_o they_o say_v to_o pilate_n that_o he_o ought_v to_o write_v on_o the_o cross_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o he_o be_v king_n of_o the_o jew_n by_o add_v to_o it_o as_o he_o say_v which_o pilate_n will_v not_o add_v say_v only_o what_o be_v write_v be_v write_v as_o i_o also_o answer_v to_o this_o benjamin_n when_o he_o will_v teach_v i_o to_o speak_v word_n which_o be_v true_a before_o man_n for_o i_o know_v well_o that_o all_o who_o i_o call_v christian_n be_v not_o true_o christian_n before_o god_n yet_o i_o will_v not_o learn_v from_o the_o quaker_n to_o add_v to_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a as_o they_o call_v they_o since_o this_o seem_v to_o i_o superfluous_a and_o i_o have_v no_o other_o intention_n in_o call_v they_o simple_o christian_n but_o to_o make_v it_o be_v understand_v of_o who_o i_o speak_v to_o wit_n that_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o jew_n or_o heathen_n but_o of_o those_o only_o who_o i_o call_v christian_n yet_o without_o design_n to_o maintain_v that_o they_o be_v true_a christian_n since_o i_o declare_v elsewhere_o that_o i_o
and_o god_n who_o have_v so_o much_o comfort_v she_o in_o prayer_n all_o the_o time_n that_o she_o be_v despise_v now_o withdraw_v from_o she_o and_o her_o prayer_n be_v without_o any_o fervour_n her_o conscience_n often_o check_v she_o when_o she_o do_v or_o say_v any_o thing_n to_o please_v the_o world_n but_o she_o have_v not_o the_o courage_n to_o withdraw_v from_o it_o but_o god_n have_v pity_n on_o she_o who_o have_v abandon_v he_o to_o turn_v to_o the_o creature_n she_o ofttimes_o feel_v inward_a motion_n from_o god_n and_o even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o her_o divertisement_n and_o dance_n she_o have_v sometime_o secret_a reproof_n from_o he_o pierce_v her_o heart_n with_o those_o inward_a word_n will_v you_o forsake_v i_o then_o for_o another_o will_v you_o find_v a_o lover_n more_o complete_a and_o more_o faithful_a than_o i_o be_o but_o a_o little_a after_o company_n and_o divertisement_n get_v the_o ascendant_n and_o even_o when_o she_o be_v excite_v by_o those_o inward_a motion_n to_o abandon_v all_o she_o will_v reply_v then_o i_o shall_v never_o have_v pleasure_n it_o be_v fit_a for_o one_o to_o take_v some_o pleasure_n in_o their_o youth_n vii_o thereupon_o then_o god_n see_v that_o his_o gentle_a motion_n avail_v nothing_o take_v more_o severe_a mean_n to_o recover_v she_o and_o fill_v her_o spirit_n with_o fearful_a apprehension_n of_o death_n judgement_n and_o hell_n the_o hear_n of_o the_o death_n of_o other_o and_o sermon_n about_o death_n and_o judgement_n do_v before_o that_o touch_n she_o but_o very_o little_a like_o the_o story_n of_o foreign_a country_n and_o she_o will_v not_o let_v herself_o think_v that_o she_o be_v concern_v in_o they_o but_o when_o god_n be_v please_v to_o open_v her_o eye_n and_o let_v she_o see_v she_o must_v die_v and_o appear_v at_o the_o great_a judgement_n then_o unexpressible_a apprehension_n seize_v she_o and_o all_o the_o day_n long_o when_o she_o be_v alone_o she_o will_v say_v to_o herself_o poor_a creature_n what_o will_v become_v of_o thou_o thou_o must_v die_v all_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n can_v save_v thou_o from_o this_o fearful_a death_n thou_o can_z not_o escape_v it_o and_o what_o wil●_n thou_o say_v when_o that_o hour_n shall_v come_v this_o she_o often_o repeat_v both_o in_o her_o mind_n and_o by_o word_n they_o with_o who_o she_o converse_v observe_v her_o sadness_n endeavour_v to_o cheer_n and_o divert_v she_o but_o all_o in_o vain_a for_o than_o she_o have_v a_o disgust_n of_o all_o recreation_n and_o earthly_a pleasure_n and_o when_o she_o force_v herself_o to_o take_v contentment_n in_o any_o thing_n she_o think_v it_o be_v say_v to_o her_o heart_n to_o what_o purpose_n take_v thou_o pleasure_n since_o thou_o must_v die_v for_o what_o will_v this_o serve_v thou_o before_o god_n but_o the_o sensitive_a part_n of_o her_o soul_n be_v very_o displease_v to_o see_v itself_o thus_o afflict_v and_o say_v in_o its_o mute_a language_n thou_o shall_v never_o be_v well_o if_o thou_o put_v not_o these_o fancy_n out_o of_o thy_o head_n but_o will_v die_v very_o short_o if_o thou_o continue_v in_o such_o apprehension_n this_o make_v her_o leave_n oft_o for_o some_o time_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o she_o come_v to_o herself_o the_o superior_a part_n say_v forget_v death_n as_o much_o as_o you_o will_v it_o shall_v not_o forget_v thou_o it_o be_v a_o folly_n to_o think_v to_o free_v thyself_o of_o it_o by_o shut_v it_o out_o of_o thy_o memory_n it_o will_v find_v thou_o every_o where_o and_o do_v not_o wait_v till_o thou_o be_v ready_a but_o come_v at_o its_o time_n unlooked_a for_o and_o when_o thou_o shall_v think_v least_o of_o it_o and_o if_o the_o idea_n of_o it_o only_o do_v so_o affright_v yea_o put_v thy_o life_n in_o hazard_n how_o will_v the_o reality_n of_o it_o make_v thou_o afraid_a when_o thy_o soul_n shall_v be_v in_o danger_n give_v place_n to_o those_o truth_n without_o flatter_v thyself_o with_o any_o reason_n viii_o spirit_n these_o be_v the_o debate_n which_o toss_v her_o spirit_n without_o cease_v she_o resolve_v then_o to_o quit_v all_o the_o world_n and_o prepare_v for_o death_n and_o prevent_v it_o since_o it_o follow_v she_o so_o hard_a but_o she_o find_v great_a difficulty_n to_o do_v it_o be_v young_a and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o worldly_a advantage_n so_o that_o she_o may_v promise_v to_o herself_o as_o much_o of_o worldly_a pleasure_n honour_n and_o wealth_n as_o any_o of_o her_o rank_n nevertheless_o the_o thought_n of_o death_n have_v yet_o great_a force_n when_o she_o think_v on_o the_o future_a state_n she_o say_v to_o herself_o it_o be_v very_o true_a mirth_n be_v agreeable_a pleasure_n be_v sweet_a and_o wealth_n delightful_a but_o this_o last_v but_o for_o a_o little_a time_n death_n will_v come_v and_o change_v all_o and_o all_o must_v be_v part_v with_o with_o a_o lamentable_a regret_n and_o it_o may_v be_v a_o eternal_a punishment_n for_o a_o good_a of_o so_o short_a continuance_n so_o that_o perceive_v clear_o this_o truth_n she_o pray_v earnest_o to_o god_n to_o give_v her_o grace_n to_o think_v always_o upon_o death_n and_o never_o to_o let_v it_o be_v out_o of_o her_o mind_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o may_v befall_v she_o which_o she_o obtain_v after_o a_o long_a perseverance_n in_o this_o prayer_n and_o to_o fix_v it_o the_o more_o upon_o her_o spirit_n she_o go_v oft_o to_o the_o churchyard_n where_o look_v on_o the_o bone_n of_o the_o dead_a she_o say_v see_v my_o body_n what_o will_v become_v of_o thou_o thy_o own_o head_n and_o thy_o own_o hand_n will_v be_v very_o short_o throw_v into_o this_o company_n and_o she_o be_v afraid_a to_o look_v upon_o they_o and_o force_v herself_o to_o approach_v they_o be_v natural_o timorous_a and_o to_o handle_v they_o save_v o_o miserable_a creature_n will_v thou_o have_v a_o horror_n for_o thyself_o draw_v near_o bold_o thou_o shall_v be_v a_o thousand_o time_n more_o vile_a when_o the_o worm_n shall_v eat_v thou_o and_o this_o will_v be_v the_o great_a honour_n that_o can_v befall_v thou_o to_o be_v rank_v with_o these_o bone_n here_o ix_o this_o give_v she_o a_o great_a disgust_n for_o the_o body_n which_o she_o former_o cherish_v penitence_n and_o a_o hatred_n and_o severity_n against_o herself_o and_o after_o her_o sister_n be_v marry_v she_o retire_v from_o all_o sort_n of_o company_n stay_v alone_o in_o her_o chamber_n enter_v upon_o a_o very_a austere_a life_n lie_v hard_a sleep_v little_a fast_v much_o mingle_v what_o she_o do_v eat_v with_o ash_n to_o mortify_v her_o taste_n wear_v hair_n cloth_n next_o to_o her_o skin_n and_o afflict_v her_o body_n and_o pray_v and_o weep_v the_o most_o part_n of_o her_o time_n for_o grief_n that_o she_o have_v leave_v the_o sweet_a conversation_n she_o have_v with_o god_n to_o please_v herself_o in_o the_o divertisement_n of_o the_o world_n she_o visit_v the_o poor_a and_o sick_a frequent_v the_o church_n and_o sacrament_n not_o know_v by_o what_o mean_v she_o can_v recover_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n which_o she_o have_v lose_v through_o her_o own_o fault_n she_o dare_v scarce_o sleep_v in_o the_o night_n fear_v to_o fall_v into_o hell_n while_o asleep_a and_o that_o the_o earth_n will_v not_o bear_v she_o so_o terrible_a be_v her_o apprehension_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o she_o dare_v not_o shut_v her_o eye_n because_o of_o her_o sin_n which_o seem_v to_o she_o so_o great_a that_o none_o have_v ever_o commit_v the_o like_a not_o that_o she_o be_v guilty_a of_o any_o crime_n or_o wicked_a deed_n but_o because_o she_o have_v forsake_v the_o sweet_a conversation_n that_o her_o soul_n have_v with_o god_n to_o please_v herself_o with_o the_o divertisement_n of_o the_o world_n after_o have_v receive_v so_o many_o favour_n from_o god_n which_o deserve_v the_o thanksgiving_n of_o her_o whole_a life_n this_o appear_v to_o she_o so_o great_a a_o sin_n that_o hell_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o punish_v it_o she_o continue_v in_o those_o austerity_n and_o mortification_n for_o seven_o year_n and_o will_v have_v do_v so_o still_o if_o god_n have_v not_o command_v she_o when_o she_o be_v twenty_o five_o year_n of_o age_n to_o leave_v this_o and_o lead_v a_o ordinary_a life_n her_o mortification_n be_v not_o the_o effect_n of_o a_o melancholy_a humour_n nor_o accompany_v with_o it_o for_o she_o be_v of_o the_o most_o serene_a and_o cheerful_a temper_n even_o to_o her_o death_n but_o she_o chastise_v herself_o with_o a_o inward_a contentment_n and_o tranquillity_n out_o of_o a_o principle_n of_o justice_n and_o her_o flood_n of_o tear_n flow_v from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n who_o friendship_n she_o have_v lose_v through_o her_o own_o fault_n be_v attend_v with_o a_o secret_a and_o most_o solid_a pleasure_n
found_v upon_o this_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o just_a than_o to_o bewail_v the_o fault_n of_o cease_v to_o love_v so_o lovely_a a_o god_n yet_o she_o confess_v that_o she_o have_v run_v too_o far_o to_o a_o extremity_n in_o her_o mortification_n and_o that_o so_o great_a that_o she_o will_v never_o tell_v it_o but_o to_o one_o and_o will_v never_o advise_v any_o to_o do_v as_o she_o have_v do_v but_o only_o to_o yield_v up_o themselves_o to_o god_n and_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v exercise_v by_o he_o and_o by_o the_o event_n which_o he_o send_v they_o x._o thus_o she_o spend_v whole_a night_n in_o prayer_n god_n oft_o repeat_v lord_n what_o will_v thou_o have_v i_o to_o do_v and_o be_v one_o night_n in_o a_o most_o profound_a penitence_n she_o say_v from_o the_o bottom_n of_o her_o heart_n o_o my_o lord_n what_o must_v i_o do_v to_o please_v thou_o for_o i_o have_v no_o body_n to_o teach_v i_o speak_v to_o my_o soul_n and_o it_o will_v hear_v thou_o at_o that_o instant_a she_o hear_v as_o if_o another_o have_v speak_v within_o she_o forsake_v all_o earthly_a thing_n separate_a thyself_o from_o the_o love_n of_o the_o creature_n deny_v thyself_o xi_o she_o be_v quite_o astonish_v monastery_n not_o understand_v this_o language_n and_o muse_v long_o on_o these_o three_o point_n think_v how_o she_o can_v fulfil_v they_o she_o think_v she_o can_v not_o live_v without_o earthly_a thing_n nor_o without_o love_v the_o creature_n nor_o without_o love_v herself_o yet_o she_o say_v by_o thy_o grace_n i_o will_v do_v it_o lord._n but_o when_o she_o will_v perform_v her_o promise_n she_o know_v not_o where_o to_o begin_v find_v herself_o strong_o engage_v in_o the_o love_n of_o all_o earthly_a thing_n which_o she_o do_v not_o observe_v before_o and_o know_v not_o how_o to_o be_v disengage_v have_v think_v on_o the_o religious_a in_o monastery_n that_o they_o forsake_v all_o earthly_a thing_n and_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o creature_n by_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o a_o cloister_n and_o the_o love_n of_o themselves_o by_o subject_v of_o their_o will_n she_o ask_v leave_v of_o her_o father_n to_o enter_v into_o a_o cloister_n of_o the_o discalceated_a carmelites_n but_o he_o will_v not_o permit_v it_o say_v he_o have_v rather_o see_v she_o lay_v in_o her_o grave_a this_o seem_v to_o her_o a_o great_a cruelty_n for_o she_o think_v to_o find_v in_o the_o cloister_n the_o true_a christian_n she_o have_v be_v seek_v but_o she_o find_v afterward_o that_o he_o know_v the_o cloister_n better_a than_o she_o for_o after_o he_o have_v forbid_v she_o and_o tell_v she_o he_o will_v never_o permit_v she_o to_o be_v a_o religious_a nor_o give_v she_o any_o money_n to_o enter_v there_o yet_o she_o go_v to_o father_n laurens_n the_o director_n and_o offer_v to_o serve_v in_o the_o monastery_n and_o work_v hard_a for_o her_o bread_n and_o be_v content_a with_o little_a if_o he_o will_v receive_v she_o at_o which_o he_o smile_v and_o say_v that_o can_v be_v we_o must_v have_v money_n to_o build_v we_o take_v no_o maid_n without_o money_n you_o must_v find_v the_o way_n to_o get_v it_o else_o there_o be_v no_o entry_n here_o this_o astonish_a she_o great_o and_o she_o be_v thereby_o undeceive_v as_o to_o the_o cloister_n resolve_v to_o forsake_v all_o company_n and_o live_v alone_o till_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o show_v she_o what_o she_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o whither_o to_o go_v xii_o the_o more_o she_o enter_v into_o herself_o call_n the_o more_o she_o be_v incline_v to_o abandon_v all_o and_o to_o retire_v somewhere_o without_o know_v whether_o her_o heart_n be_v disengage_v from_o temporal_a good_n from_o worldly_a pleasure_n from_o all_o creature_n yet_o she_o do_v not_o find_v herself_o altogether_o free_a nor_o entire_o unite_v unto_o god_n for_o she_o be_v apt_a sometime_o to_o turn_v again_o to_o what_o she_o have_v leave_v she_o ask_v always_o earnest_o when_o shall_v i_o be_v perfect_o thou_o o_o my_o god_n and_o she_o think_v he_o still_o answer_v she_o when_o thou_o shall_v no_o long_o possess_v any_o thing_n and_o shall_v die_v to_o thyself_o and_o where_o shall_v i_o do_v that_o lord_n he_o answer_v she_o in_o the_o desert_n this_o make_v so_o strong_a a_o impression_n on_o her_o soul_n that_o she_o aspire_v after_o this_o but_o be_v a_o maid_n of_o eighteen_o year_n only_o she_o be_v afraid_a of_o unlucky_a chance_n and_o be_v never_o use_v to_o travel_v and_o know_v no_o way_n she_o lay_v aside_o all_o these_o doubt_n and_o say_v lord_n thou_o will_v guide_v i_o how_o and_o where_o it_o shall_v please_v thou_o it_o be_v for_o thou_o that_o i_o do_v it_o i_o will_v lay_v aside_o my_o habit_n of_o a_o maid_n and_o will_v take_v that_o of_o a_o hermit_n that_o i_o may_v pass_v unknown_a xiii_o have_v then_o secret_o make_v ready_a this_o habit_n h●use_n while_o her_o parent_n think_v to_o have_v marry_v she_o her_o father_n have_v promise_v she_o to_o a_o rich_a french_a merchant_n she_o prevent_v the_o time_n and_o on_o easter_n evening_n have_v cut_v her_o hair_n put_v on_o the_o habit_n and_o sleep_v a_o little_a she_o go_v out_o of_o her_o chamber_n about_o four_o in_o the_o morning_n take_v nothing_o but_o one_o penny_n to_o buy_v bread_n for_o that_o day_n and_o it_o be_v say_v to_o she_o in_o the_o go_v out_o where_o be_v thy_o faith_n in_o a_o penny_n she_o throw_v it_o a_o way_n beg_v pardon_n of_o god_n for_o her_o fault_n and_o say_v no_o lord_n my_o faith_n be_v not_o in_o a_o penny_n but_o in_o thou_o alone_o thus_o she_o go_v away_o whole_o deliver_v from_o the_o heavy_a burden_n of_o the_o care_n and_o good_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n and_o find_v her_o soul_n so_o satisfy_v that_o she_o no_o long_o wish_v for_o any_o thing_n upon_o earth_n rest_v entire_o upon_o god_n with_o this_o only_a fear_n lest_o she_o shall_v be_v discover_v and_o be_v oblige_v to_o return_v home_o for_o she_o feel_v already_o more_o content_a in_o this_o poverty_n than_o she_o have_v do_v for_o all_o her_o life_n in_o all_o the_o delight_n of_o the_o world_n fourteen_o she_o know_v no_o way_n deliver_v nor_o whither_o to_o go_v she_o go_v out_o at_o the_o gate_n that_o lead_v to_o tournay_n and_o come_v thither_o about_o ten_o a_o clock_n then_o past_a into_o the_o province_n of_o hainault_n and_o come_v through_o a_o village_n call_v bassec_n where_o be_v arrive_v that_o day_n a_o company_n of_o soldier_n who_o be_v play_v in_o the_o marketplace_n when_o she_o have_v pass_v by_o they_o and_o come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o village_n she_o meet_v a_o number_n of_o child_n at_o their_o play_n who_o look_v on_o she_o begin_v to_o say_v it_o be_v a_o maid_n and_o cry_v this_o so_o loud_a to_o one_o another_o the_o soldiers_z run_v to_o know_v the_o fray_n and_o then_o take_v horse_n they_o overtake_v she_o in_o the_o field_n and_o stop_v she_o ask_v who_o she_o be_v and_o whither_o she_o go_v she_o be_v surprise_v but_o look_v before_o she_o she_o see_v a_o church_n and_o hope_v there_o may_v be_v some_o good_a pastor_n there_o to_o deliver_v she_o she_o say_v she_o be_v go_v to_o the_o pastor_n who_o will_v satisfy_v they_o the_o commander_n bring_v she_o to_o the_o next_o village_n blatton_n to_o the_o old_a mayor_n house_n promise_v to_o have_v she_o to_o the_o pastor_n when_o once_o his_o man_n be_v lodge_v there_o he_o think_v to_o have_v abuse_v she_o by_o force_n or_o enticement_n but_o she_o tell_v he_o resolute_o that_o he_o shall_v first_o kill_v she_o or_o she_o he_o and_o that_o she_o believe_v the_o earth_n will_v open_v to_o swallow_v he_o up_o the_o old_a mayor_n and_o his_o wife_n defend_v she_o and_o he_o threaten_v to_o burn_v the_o house_n and_o call_v his_o man_n to_o arm_n about_o it_o the_o maid_n of_o the_o house_n get_v out_o at_o a_o window_n and_o tell_v the_o pastor_n who_o come_v into_o the_o chamber_n where_o the_o captain_n be_v rage_v like_o one_o mad_a grave_o rebuke_v he_o and_o take_v she_o by_o the_o hand_n he_o with_o his_o chaplain_n lead_v she_o through_o the_o soldier_n into_o his_o lodging_n the_o captain_n sink_v into_o a_o astonishment_n against_o the_o wall_n without_o stir_v for_o the_o pastor_n be_v a_o grave_n and_o virtuous_a man_n of_o great_a age_n who_o word_n have_v strike_v the_o captain_n and_o take_v away_o all_o his_o strength_n and_o spirit_n but_o when_o this_o be_v over_o he_o come_v with_o his_o man_n to_o the_o pastour_n house_n to_o search_v for_o she_o and_o not_o find_v she_o and_o be_v make_v believe_v she_o be_v go_v they_o gallop_v towards_o mons_fw-la think_v to_o overtake_v she_o xv._n the_o
beware_v of_o she_o say_v she_o be_v guide_v by_o a_o evil_a spirit_n that_o one_o such_o be_v plague_n enough_o in_o a_o community_n and_o tell_v herself_o that_o the_o devil_n con●ducted_v she_o that_o he_o transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n that_o there_o need_v no_o other_o proof_n than_o her_o live_n without_o a_o director_n and_o she_o will_v ruin_v herself_o if_o she_o do_v not_o submit_v to_o their_o direction_n they_o press_v she_o by_o so_o many_o reason_n that_o she_o doubt_v in_o may_v be_v true_a she_o have_v recourse_n to_o god_n but_o her_o spirit_n be_v to●t_n with_o divers_a passion_n she_o discern_v nothing_o be_v whole_o in_o darkness_n she_o go_v to_o the_o archbishop_n who_o be_v persuade_v she_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n think_v she_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v the_o direction_n of_o men._n pere_fw-fr du_fw-fr bois_n confirm_v the_o same_o she_o rest_v upon_o this_o yet_o beg_v leave_v of_o the_o archbishop_n to_o read_v the_o new_a testament_n that_o she_o may_v discover_v her_o error_n by_o confront_v her_o sentiment_n with_o the_o gospel_n she_o no_o soon_o begin_v to_o read_v attentive_o the_o gospel_n than_o she_o perceive_v such_o a_o conformity_n with_o her_o inward_a sentiment_n that_o if_o she_o be_v to_o set_v they_o down_o in_o write_v she_o shall_v write_v such_o a_o book_n in_o substance_n as_o the_o gospel_n she_o leave_v off_o to_o read_v more_o because_o god_n teach_v she_o inward_o all_o that_o she_o need_v and_o that_o his_o conduct_n and_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n xxvi_o the_o archbishop_n desire_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o council_n judge_v the_o undertake_n to_o be_v from_o god_n give_v she_o his_o blessing_n and_o permission_n to_o begin_v such_o a_o society_n at_o blatton_n where_o a_o widow-woman_n have_v offer_v a_o piece_n of_o ground_n for_o which_o she_o afterward_o pay_v she_o and_o there_o be_v a_o house_n begin_v but_o not_o finish_v because_o of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o pastor_n g._n de_fw-fr lisle_n and_o the_o churchman_n apply_v with_o all_o vigour_n to_o stop_v it_o as_o they_o do_v he_o ask_v she_o whereupon_o they_o will_v live_v she_o say_v upon_o their_o little_a garden_n and_o god_n will_v provide_v for_o the_o rest_n that_o he_o never_o fail_v those_o who_o serve_v he_o true_o and_o if_o they_o serve_v he_o ill_o far_o better_o that_o all_o be_v dissolve_v than_o to_o deceive_v the_o world_n by_o hypocrisy_n he_o ask_v if_o she_o will_v make_v vow_n she_o say_v none_o he_o say_v each_o one_o love_n be_v not_o so_o strong_a as_o to_o make_v they_o persevere_v free_o she_o say_v they_o who_o have_v it_o not_o will_v not_o come_v and_o if_o they_o lose_v the_o love_n of_o god_n when_o they_o be_v there_o it_o be_v far_o better_a they_o return_v to_o the_o world_n than_o to_o disorder_v other_o or_o make_v they_o lukewarm_a xxvii_o she_o have_v communicate_v to_o pere_fw-fr du_fw-fr bois_n she_o upon_o his_o importunity_n a_o write_v wherein_o she_o represent_v that_o god_n have_v make_v know_v to_o she_o that_o all_o the_o evil_n of_o the_o church_n come_v from_o the_o churchman_n and_o that_o they_o must_v amend_v if_o they_o will_v turn_v away_o god_n wrath._n this_o paper_n be_v quick_o spread_v abroad_o of_o which_o she_o complain_v to_o pere_fw-fr du_fw-fr bois_n who_o say_v he_o be_v oblige_v in_o conscience_n to_o do_v it_o all_o the_o churchman_n and_o religious_a order_n be_v so_o far_o from_o amend_v there_o fault_n thereby_o that_o it_o fill_v they_o with_o hatred_n and_o revenge_n against_o she_o utter_v many_o reproach_n some_o of_o they_o declare_v that_o if_o they_o can_v have_v she_o they_o will_v drown_v she_o xxviii_o the_o jesuit_n learning_n the_o design_n she_o have_v of_o re-establish_a a_o christian_a life_n in_o a_o community_n permission_n set_v on_o the_o archbishop_n with_o so_o much_o earnestness_n and_o so_o many_o calumny_n against_o she_o that_o they_o entire_o change_v he_o and_o he_o retract_v his_o permission_n she_o remonstrate_v to_o he_o his_o sin_n in_o be_v so_o easy_o persuade_v by_o man_n to_o change_v his_o resolution_n and_o to_o oppose_v what_o he_o know_v come_v from_o god_n and_o forewarn_v he_o that_o for_o a_o punishment_n he_o shall_v die_v very_o short_o as_o he_o do_v about_o six_o month_n thereafter_o pere_fw-fr du_fw-fr bois_n persuade_v she_o to_o go_v to_o liege_n where_o she_o will_v obtain_v her_o desire_n but_o before_o she_o return_v the_o jesuit_n have_v constrain_v the_o poor_a maid_n to_o promise_v by_o oath_n not_o to_o follow_v she_o and_o even_o not_o to_o speak_v to_o she_o two_o of_o the_o best_a of_o they_o marry_o malapert_a and_o la_fw-fr bar_n the_o young_a die_v short_o after_o through_o the_o anguish_n and_o affliction_n of_o spirit_n in_o which_o they_o put_v they_o a._n b._n say_v of_o marry_o malapert_a that_o she_o be_v the_o pure_a soul_n that_o ever_o she_o know_v and_o the_o only_a person_n she_o ever_o know_v in_o the_o world_n in_o a_o state_n of_o complete_a regeneration_n and_o union_n with_o god_n which_o she_o enjoy_v without_o know_v it_o well_o herself_o not_o but_o that_o when_o she_o enjoy_v actual_a conversation_n with_o god_n she_o be_v then_o most_o certain_a of_o it_o but_o when_o she_o return_v to_o her_o director_n they_o know_v so_o well_o to_o distract_v she_o by_o outward_a thing_n by_o constrain_a rule_n and_o cloud_n of_o foreign_a thought_n that_o she_o know_v not_o where_o she_o be_v nor_o the_o true_a state_n of_o her_o soul_n and_o one_o of_o the_o three_o thing_n for_o which_o a._n b._n always_o bless_v god_n be_v that_o he_o have_v preserve_v she_o from_o the_o direction_n of_o men._n xxix_o have_v after_o this_o retire_v stay_v for_o some_o time_n at_o blatton_n and_o then_o by_o pere_fw-fr du_fw-fr bois_n advice_n with_o the_o countess_n of_o wallerwal_n who_o live_v in_o caelibacy_n and_o design_v to_o employ_v her_o wealth_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n desire_v to_o see_v she_o where_o she_o meet_v with_o nothing_o but_o distraction_n she_o be_v call_v back_o to_o lisle_n by_o the_o sickness_n of_o her_o mother_n who_o long_v to_o see_v she_o before_o she_o die_v she_o find_v her_o sick_a to_o death_n who_o bless_v god_n that_o he_o have_v grant_v her_o desire_n and_o foretell_v she_o what_o grievous_a affliction_n be_v to_o befall_v she_o after_o her_o mother_n death_n she_o resolve_v to_o retire_v again_o her_o father_n and_o friend_n urge_v she_o that_o all_o the_o law_n both_o of_o god_n and_o man_n do_v oblige_v she_o though_o she_o have_v be_v in_o a_o desert_n or_o a_o cloister_n to_o come_v and_o assist_v her_o age_a father_n in_o his_o affair_n she_o be_v persuade_v so_o to_o do_v and_o so_o order_v her_o hour_n of_o recollection_n and_o the_o time_n of_o manage_v his_o affair_n that_o she_o do_v all_o to_o his_o contentment_n yet_o though_o sixty_o year_n of_o age_n he_o will_v needs_o marry_v without_o his_o child_n knowledge_n a_o poor_a maid_n for_o his_o fancy_n without_o either_o wit_n or_o virtue_n a._n b._n stay_v with_o they_o four_o month_n to_o acquaint_v she_o with_o the_o affair_n in_o which_o time_n she_o suffer_v grievous_o by_o she_o she_o resolu●d_v to_o retire_v and_o desire_v of_o her_o father_n some_o of_o her_o mother_n good_n for_o her_o substance_n which_o he_o utter_o refuse_v it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o low-countries_a be_v quite_o different_a from_o those_o of_o england_n or_o scotland_n particular_o in_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o good_n of_o husband_n and_o wife_n for_o the_o good_n of_o the_o wife_n be_v either_o the_o portion_n give_v she_o or_o any_o other_o good_n give_v she_o or_o purchase_v by_o herself_o the_o husband_n have_v nothing_o but_o the_o use_n and_o profit_n of_o the_o portion_n during_o the_o wife_n life_n and_o she_o may_v dispose_v of_o and_o trade_n with_o she_o other_o good_n as_o she_o please_v and_o at_o her_o death_n the_o propriety_n and_o profit_n also_o of_o her_o portion_n and_o all_o her_o good_n do_v belong_v to_o her_o child_n or_o other_o heir_n and_o none_o of_o they_o to_o the_o husband_n a._n b._n relate_v to_o her_o sister_n what_o have_v pass_v and_o that_o their_o father_n say_v all_o their_o mother_n good_n belong_v to_o he_o upon_o which_o her_o sister_n husband_n resolu●d_v to_o oblige_v he_o by_o law_n and_o according_o present_v a_o bill_n to_o the_o magistrate_n but_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o wit_n and_o credit_n draw_v they_o into_o a_o process_n in_o which_o they_o can_v not_o get_v justice_n for_o during_o it_o her_o brother-in-law_n fall_v sick_a and_o die_v upon_o which_o she_o desist_v from_o that_o pursuit_n and_o retire_v to_o a_o little_a
house_n at_o the_o church_n of_o st._n 〈◊〉_d near_a lisle_n xxx_o there_o she_o live_v alone_o andrew_n wrought_v to_o gain_v her_o live_n be_v more_o con●●ted_v than_o ever_o be_v rid_v of_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o world_n and_o converse_v with_o no_o body_n a_o poor_a maid_n bring_v her_o food_n once_o a_o week_n and_o very_o often_o the_o door_n be_v not_o open_v till_o she_o come_v again_o the_o consolation_n she_o receive_v from_o god_n in_o that_o place_n be_v unexpressible_a full_a of_o spiritual_a delight_n so_o that_o she_o often_o past_o whole_a day_n without_o eat_v or_o drink_v not_o know_v it_o be_v night_n she_o be_v so_o transport_v with_o they_o that_o she_o ask_v of_o god_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n beyond_o they_o in_o life_n eternal_a he_o answer_v infinite_o more_o beyond_o comparison_n you_o ought_v not_o during_o this_o life_n to_o delight_v yourself_o in_o such_o sensibility_n the_o least_o sensible_a motion_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o most_o perfect_a and_o of_o which_o the_o devil_n can_v take_v no_o hold_n as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o sensible_a one_o thus_o he_o deliver_v she_o from_o all_o corporeal_a sensibility_n to_o which_o she_o be_v no_o more_o subject_n and_o ●he_v afterward_o walk_v sure_o in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n and_o whereas_o she_o will_v fix_v her_o residence_n in_o that_o place_n of_o delight_n he_o say_v to_o she_o thou_o shall_v walk_v yet_o in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v persecute_v and_o reproach_v thou_o shall_v fly_v into_o the_o desert_n through_o rugged_a way_n prefer_v my_o glory_n to_o thy_o contentment_n i_o have_v no_o repose_n upon_o earth_n xxxi_o she_o be_v trouble_v there_o for_o some_o time_n by_o the_o pursuit_n of_o a_o foolish_a youth_n youth_n nephew_n to_o the_o pastor_n there_o who_o have_v see_v she_o become_v desperate_o in_o love_n with_o she_o and_o still_o haunt_v about_o her_o house_n she_o complain_v to_o his_o uncle_n who_o have_v threaten_v to_o put_v he_o away_o if_o he_o shall_v not_o desist_v he_o change_v his_o love_n into_o fury_n and_o several_a time_n shoot_v a_o fuzee_n through_o her_o chamber_n and_o at_o last_o give_v out_o he_o have_v marry_v she_o and_o in_o less_o than_o a_o hour_n all_o lisle_n be_v full_a of_o it_o every_o one_o speak_v of_o she_o with_o contempt_n she_o know_v nothing_o of_o it_o till_o her_o confessor_n send_v to_o ask_v she_o and_o the_o preacher_n publish_v the_o falsehood_n of_o it_o to_o the_o people_n xxxii_o after_o four_o year_n stay_v in_o this_o retreat_n war._n she_o be_v force_v to_o flee_v in_o haste_n the_o french_a come_v into_o this_o village_n to_o surprise_v lisle_n she_o retire_v into_o the_o town_n in_o the_o house_n of_o a_o poor_a devout_a maid_n who_o give_v she_o a_o corner_n in_o a_o garret_n where_o in_o the_o winter_n she_o suffer_v great_a cold_a be_v oft_o cover_v with_o snow_n in_o the_o morning_n when_o she_o awake_v the_o countess_n of_o willerwall_n write_v to_o she_o earnest_o to_o return_v to_o she_o which_o she_o do_v and_o stay_v with_o she_o about_o a_o year_n till_o she_o be_v call_v to_o lisle_n her_o father_n be_v a_o die_a xxxiii_o have_v do_v the_o last_o office_n to_o her_o father_n good_n and_o her_o sister_n be_v dead_a childless_a and_o she_o remain_v the_o sole_a heiress_n of_o her_o mother_n she_o be_v doubtful_a whether_o she_o shall_v meddle_v with_o the_o succession_n she_o consider_v on_o the_o one_o hand_n that_o after_o have_v forsake_v all_o worldly_a good_n to_o follow_v the_o poverty_n of_o jesus_n christ_n she_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v they_o up_o again_o on_o the_o other_o side_n she_o know_v not_o to_o who_o to_o leave_v it_o fear_v to_o do_v evil_a and_o to_o partake_v in_o the_o sin_n of_o those_o who_o shall_v possess_v it_o her_o mother-in-law_n have_v waste_v those_o good_n more_o than_o a_o half_a for_o the_o five_o year_n she_o have_v live_v with_o he_o and_o though_o at_o his_o marriage_n he_o have_v 20000_o florin_n in_o cash_n yet_o she_o have_v not_o only_o spend_v that_o but_o great_a revenue_n of_o his_o own_o good_n and_o of_o his_o first_o wife_n be_v beside_o the_o revenue_n of_o his_o office_n capable_a of_o maintain_v honourable_o all_o his_o family_n so_o that_o at_o his_o death_n there_o be_v not_o wherewith_o to_o bury_v he_o she_o will_v not_o be_v guilty_a therefore_o of_o leave_v they_o to_o one_o who_o will_v make_v no_o other_o use_n of_o they_o but_o to_o offend_v god_n in_o this_o perplexity_n she_o advise_v with_o her_o confessor_n who_o think_v that_o she_o ought_v to_o take_v what_o belong_v to_o she_o and_o dispose_v of_o it_o in_o alm_n remit_v she_o nevertheless_o to_o be_v determine_v by_o god_n after_o some_o day_n of_o earnest_a prayer_n to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v direct_v she_o what_o to_o do_v in_o this_o matter_n he_o say_v to_o she_o pursue_v your_o right_n take_v your_o good_n you_o shall_v have_v need_n of_o they_o for_o my_o glory_n she_o claim_v then_o the_o half_a of_o the_o good_n due_a to_o she_o by_o law_n and_o custom_n as_o the_o sole_a heiress_n of_o her_o mother_n leave_v the_o other_o for_o the_o child_n of_o the_o second_o marriage_n and_o be_v toss_v with_o many_o trouble_n before_o that_o process_n be_v at_o a_o end_n xxxiv_o some_o be_v ready_a to_o interpret_v this_o as_o a_o hanker_a after_o the_o world_n man._n as_o she_o foresee_v they_o will_v and_o that_o her_o declaration_n that_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o she_o shall_v possess_v her_o right_n be_v pure_o her_o own_o invention_n to_o cover_v this_o we_o be_v still_o apt_a to_o measure_v other_o by_o ourselves_o and_o to_o think_v that_o their_o action_n can_v proceed_v from_o another_o spirit_n and_o principle_n than_o what_o we_o be_v conscious_a we_o will_v flow_v from_o in_o the_o same_o circumstance_n but_o they_o who_o consider_v the_o whole_a tract_n of_o her_o life_n will_v not_o be_v so_o rash_a in_o their_o judgement_n worldly_a good_n be_v not_o evil_a in_o themselves_o the_o only_a evil_n be_v that_o when_o we_o possess_v they_o we_o be_v not_o as_o though_o we_o possess_v they_o not_o but_o our_o heart_n be_v set_v on_o they_o and_o therefore_o god_n command_v either_o the_o forsake_v or_o keep_v of_o they_o and_o we_o ought_v either_o to_o abandon_v or_o possess_v they_o according_a as_o our_o heart_n be_v apt_a to_o be_v set_v upon_o they_o or_o be_v whole_o mortify_v to_o they_o a._n b._n have_v be_v habituate_v to_o a_o state_n of_o mortification_n to_o the_o world_n and_o all_o earthly_a thing_n by_o a_o actual_a abandon_v of_o it_o in_o a_o course_n of_o many_o year_n god_n have_v thus_o try_v she_o as_o he_o do_v abraham_n in_o relation_n to_o his_o son_n isaac_n and_o this_o be_v become_v her_o delight_n and_o element_n and_o when_o she_o come_v to_o possess_v they_o again_o it_o appear_v through_o all_o her_o life_n that_o she_o do_v it_o as_o though_o she_o possess_v they_o not_o look_v on_o herself_o only_o as_o a_o steward_n of_o they_o to_o employ_v they_o for_o her_o master_n use_n and_o they_o as_o a_o weighty_a charge_n to_o she_o which_o she_o will_v glad_o have_v be_v rid_v of_o employ_v they_o whole_o for_o many_o year_n in_o the_o bring_n up_o of_o orphan_n and_o never_o throughout_o all_o her_o life_n take_v to_o herself_o but_o simple_a necessary_n no_o more_o than_o if_o she_o have_v be_v in_o the_o great_a poverty_n xxxv_o be_v one_o day_n in_o the_o street_n about_o her_o affair_n she_o a_o man_n who_o she_o know_v not_o accost_v she_o and_o afterward_o come_v to_o her_o lodging_n tell_v she_o there_o be_v multitude_n of_o poor_a infant_n make_v orphan_n by_o the_o war_n in_o great_a want_n both_o as_o to_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o that_o she_o may_v remedy_v this_o great_a evil_n god_n have_v give_v her_o talent_n and_o commodity_n to_o undertake_v so_o good_a a_o work_n and_o pray_v she_o to_o recommend_v this_o proposition_n to_o god_n who_o will_v make_v know_v his_o will_n to_o she_o thereabouts_o the_o man_n have_v a_o great_a appearance_n of_o piety_n and_o speak_v so_o divine_o of_o spiritual_a thing_n that_o she_o think_v he_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n he_o tell_v she_o he_o be_v call_v john_n s._n saulieu_n bear_v near_o dorway_n that_o he_o have_v never_o study_v letter_n but_o for_o his_o own_o perfection_n that_o he_o have_v still_o converse_v with_o virtuous_a person_n and_o stay_v some_o time_n with_o a_o hermit_n and_o have_v now_o for_o his_o director_n the_o pastor_n of_o st._n stephens_n at_o lisle_n and_o a_o character_n be_v ask_v of_o he_o he_o say_v he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o a_o apostolic_a zeal_n he_o walk_v on_o the_o street_n
come_v near_o their_o principle_n she_o tell_v they_o their_o malady_n be_v that_o they_o will_v needs_o comprehend_v all_o by_o the_o activity_n of_o humane_a reason_n without_o give_v place_n to_o the_o light_n of_o divine_a faith_n which_o require_v a_o cessation_n of_o the_o activity_n of_o our_o reason_n that_o god_n may_v shed_v or_o revive_v therein_o that_o divine_a light_n without_o which_o not_o only_o god_n be_v not_o well_o know_v but_o even_o he_o and_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o he_o be_v banish_v out_o of_o the_o soul_n by_o this_o activity_n of_o our_o corrupt_a mind_n and_o reason_n which_o be_v a_o real_a kind_n of_o atheism_n and_o reject_v of_o god_n they_o be_v so_o full_a of_o their_o idea_n that_o they_o mock_v at_o her_o remonstrance_n but_o one_o of_o they_o be_v a_o little_a after_o seize_v with_o a_o mortal_a sickness_n in_o the_o flower_n of_o his_o age_n and_o god_n open_v his_o eye_n to_o let_v he_o see_v his_o error_n he_o begin_v to_o lament_v and_o cry_v night_n and_o day_n my_o understanding_n my_o understanding_n to_o what_o have_v thou_o bring_v i_o alas_o my_o reason_n in_o which_o i_o so_o much_o trust_v what_o assistance_n can_v thou_o give_v i_o now_o now_o thou_o can_v give_v i_o neither_o salvation_n nor_o the_o hope_n of_o it_o i_o must_v be_v damn_v there_o can_v be_v no_o mercy_n for_o i_o a_o friend_n of_o a._n b._n go_v to_o see_v he_o in_o that_o state_n endeavour_v to_o comfort_v he_o but_o the_o other_o find_v no_o quiet_a ask_v he_o still_o if_o he_o think_v there_o be_v yet_o any_o mercy_n to_o be_v hope_v for_o his_o soul_n and_o then_o cast_v again_o his_o eye_n and_o arm_n from_o one_o side_n to_o another_o begin_v again_o his_o complaint_n my_o understanding_n my_o understanding_n whether_o have_v thou_o guide_v i_o some_o of_o his_o friend_n among_o other_o steno_n and_o swammerdam_n come_v often_o to_o visit_v and_o comfort_v he_o but_o nothing_o can_v calm_v he_o at_o last_o he_o turn_v to_o the_o friend_n of_o a._n b._n say_v go_v tell_v that_o good_a soul_n meaning_n a._n b._n to_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o i_o that_o i_o may_v obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o this_o sin_n otherwise_o i_o be_o damn_v or_o must_v suffer_v a_o very_a long_a purgatory_n o_o if_o i_o can_v recover_v of_o this_o sickness_n i_o will_v turn_v whole_o unto_o god_n and_o will_v follow_v quite_o another_o way_n but_o when_o this_o be_v tell_v to_o a._n b._n she_o answer_v he_o shall_v not_o rise_v again_o but_o he_o will_v die_v for_o if_o he_o shall_v recover_v he_o will_v fall_v again_o more_o profound_o into_o this_o pernicious_a error_n he_o die_v his_o judgement_n be_v sound_a and_o good_a but_o with_o great_a repentance_n and_o contrition_n adore_v with_o great_a fervency_n jesus_n christ_n crucify_v to_o the_o greek_n and_o to_o the_o philosopher_n foolishness_n a._n b._n have_v such_o a_o horror_n for_o this_o wicked_a disposition_n of_o the_o philosopher_n that_o she_o can_v not_o suffer_v it_o affirm_v that_o god_n have_v declare_v to_o she_o express_o that_o this_o error_n of_o cartesianism_n be_v the_o worst_a and_o most_o curse_a of_o all_o the_o heresy_n in_o the_o world_n and_o a_o formal_a atheism_n or_o a_o reject_v of_o god_n in_o who_o place_n corrupt_a reason_n do_v set_v up_o itself_o not_o that_o this_o idol_n of_o corrupt_a reason_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n common_a to_o all_o the_o learned_a and_o to_o all_o sort_n of_o philosopher_n as_o well_o as_o the_o cartesian_o but_o these_o be_v incomparable_o more_o wed_v to_o it_o they_o think_v they_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o it_o above_o all_o and_o they_o will_v admit_v of_o nothing_o but_o by_o this_o way_n after_o she_o have_v be_v visit_v by_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n who_o reap_v not_o that_o profit_n they_o may_v have_v do_v god_n send_v she_o two_o or_o three_o sincere_a and_o well_o dispose_v man_n who_o find_v in_o her_o life_n and_o conversation_n the_o mean_n to_o approach_v unto_o god_n and_o to_o advance_v the_o perfection_n of_o their_o soul_n leave_v the_o world_n their_o business_n and_o friend_n and_o continue_v with_o she_o all_o the_o time_n of_o her_o life_n and_o they_o all_o other_o withdraw_v to_o her_o great_a satisfaction_n she_o say_v god_n have_v make_v she_o see_v by_o this_o converse_n with_o people_n of_o all_o sort_n who_o she_o have_v admit_v indifferent_o by_o his_o divine_a order_n how_o few_o be_v to_o be_v gain_v in_o the_o world_n even_o among_o the_o best_a and_o those_o who_o seek_v the_o truth_n and_o that_o after_o these_o visit_n god_n will_v never_o more_o engage_v she_o to_o such_o a_o distraction_n and_o that_o she_o shall_v lead_v a_o retire_a life_n all_o the_o rest_n of_o her_o day_n which_o fall_v out_o and_o she_o begin_v it_o then_o in_o amsterdam_n and_o do_v not_o give_v access_n as_o former_o lii_o book_n she_o employ_v most_o of_o this_o time_n to_o compose_v many_o book_n of_o which_o these_o be_v the_o principal_a the_o funeral_n of_o false_a divinity_n in_o 4_o part_n upon_o occasion_n of_o some_o conference_n with_o the_o cartesian_a philosopher_n she_o write_v the_o holy_a perspective_n there_o she_o write_v also_o her_o outward_a life_n and_o the_o new_a heaven_n and_o the_o new_a earth_n in_o the_o write_n of_o which_o she_o be_v so_o ravish_v that_o she_o often_o forget_v her_o necessary_a food_n she_o design_v to_o have_v continue_v these_o wonder_n but_o god_n say_v unto_o she_o leave_v that_o work_n man_n be_v not_o worthy_a nor_o capable_a of_o it_o they_o will_v imagine_v that_o they_o have_v the_o disposition_n requisite_a for_o that_o glorious_a state_n but_o they_o be_v very_o far_o from_o they_o show_v they_o rather_o the_o miserable_a state_n they_o be_v bring_v into_o by_o sin_n under_o the_o dominion_n of_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o under_o the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n who_o now_o rule_v over_o they_o without_o their_o apprehend_n it_o write_v to_o they_o of_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n so_o she_o lay_v by_o her_o pen_n and_o that_o work_n say_v to_o god_n i_o shall_v do_v it_o lord_n and_o write_v afterward_o the_o treatise_n of_o antichrist_n discover_v in_o three_o part_n she_o begin_v another_o treatise_n call_v the_o last_o mercy_n of_o god_n but_o do_v not_o finish_v it_o for_o the_o reason_n tell_v in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o it_o and_o the_o traverse_n she_o meet_v with_o in_o the_o imprisonment_n of_o m._n de_fw-fr cort_n and_o her_o own_o persecution_n and_o flight_n keep_v she_o from_o the_o pursue_v that_o and_o other_o work_n which_o she_o have_v begin_v liii_o jansenist_n have_v m._n de_fw-fr cort_n follow_v her_o counsel_n he_o may_v have_v avoid_v all_o the_o mischief_n he_o fall_v into_o but_o the_o sincerity_n and_o goodness_n of_o his_o nature_n will_v not_o let_v he_o think_v that_o he_o have_v such_o cruel_a enemy_n especial_o among_o his_o brethren_n and_o friend_n the_o priest_n churchman_n and_o his_o own_o disciple_n who_o he_o have_v bring_v up_o and_o to_o who_o he_o have_v hitherto_o leave_v and_o give_v all_o he_o can_v not_o believe_v that_o they_o will_v seek_v to_o imprison_v he_o or_o endeavour_v to_o poison_v he_o as_o she_o forewarn_v he_o of_o both_o and_o still_o bid_v he_o take_v heed_n of_o they_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o this_o imprisonment_n be_v that_o god_n have_v touch_v his_o heart_n to_o hearken_v to_o the_o divine_a truth_n declare_v unto_o he_o by_o a._n b._n he_o resolve_v not_o only_o to_o embrace_v they_o but_o to_o publish_v they_o also_o to_o other_o design_v to_o retire_v to_o the_o isle_n of_o noordstrand_n of_o which_o he_o be_v director_n and_o have_v the_o best_a part_n of_o it_o at_o his_o disposal_n and_o to_o invite_v good_a man_n thither_o who_o desire_v to_o lead_v a_o christian_a life_n this_o seem_v to_o his_o brethren_n a_o apostasy_n and_o the_o set_n up_o a_o new_a heresy_n they_o resolve_v therefore_o to_o ruin_v he_o but_o this_o pretext_n will_v not_o do_v at_o amsterdam_n or_o holstein_n and_o therefore_o they_o must_v devise_v another_o at_o amsterdam_n there_o be_v a_o dungeon_n where_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o creditor_n they_o arrest_v and_o shut_v up_o stranger_n who_o be_v in_o debt_n till_o they_o have_v satisfy_v it_o there_o be_v usual_o ten_o or_o twelve_o prisoner_n there_o live_v in_o despair_n as_o mad_a pass_v the_o time_n in_o swear_v blaspheme_a and_o commit_v a_o thousand_o impiety_n and_o sometime_o kill_v one_o another_o have_v no_o food_n but_o a_o piece_n of_o brown_a bread_n and_o a_o little_a small_a beer_n and_o there_o some_o of_o they_o die_v in_o misery_n they_o think_v this_o place_n will_v do_v as_o well_o as_o one_o of_o the_o prison_n of_o the_o roman_a inquisition_n and_o to_o
which_o his_o highness_n have_v grant_v to_o the_o partner_n of_o that_o isle_n that_o she_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o the_o pastor_n of_o holstein_n her_o enemy_n that_o she_o and_o 〈◊〉_d will_v let_v they_o and_o their_o hearer_n do_v and_o say_v what_o ●●ey_n please_v that_o while_o they_o give_v offence_n to_o no_o body_n but_o live_v honest_o and_o just_o and_o even_o bring_v temporal_a advantage_n to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o country_n and_o have_v nothing_o but_o just_a design_n they_o ought_v not_o to_o oppose_v they_o fear_v thereby_o to_o oppose_v god_n that_o otherwise_o god_n will_v take_v vengeance_n on_o they_o and_o that_o she_o be_v much_o afraid_a that_o he_o may_v punish_v the_o country_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o she_o have_v be_v and_o may_v yet_o be_v treat_v by_o they_o it_o be_v like_o the_o discourse_n of_o the_o pastor_n make_v all_o this_o vanish_v but_o they_o can_v not_o put_v off_o what_o follow_v some_o month_n after_o however_o she_o resolve_v to_o wait_v with_o patience_n to_o see_v if_o they_o will_v grant_v her_o just_a request_n she_o apply_v herself_o to_o take_v a_o particular_a care_n of_o form_v the_o soul_n of_o those_o who_o be_v with_o she_o according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n both_o as_o to_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a she_o write_v for_o their_o spiritual_a direction_n beside_o many_o particular_a letter_n one_o common_a to_o they_o all_o which_o be_v the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o renovation_n of_o the_o evangelical_n spirit_n and_o for_o their_o outward_a behaviour_n begin_v to_o write_v the_o treatise_n call_v sound_a advice_n and_o also_o the_o rule_n of_o christian_n which_o last_o be_v join_v to_o the_o treatise_n call_v the_o stone_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n as_o she_o prescribe_v they_o nothing_o of_o herself_o she_o ask_v god_n his_o will_n as_o to_o the_o government_n of_o outward_a thing_n for_o which_o he_o give_v her_o particular_a rule_n which_o be_v already_o put_v into_o english_a in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n p._n 19_o short_o after_o this_o the_o court_n be_v force_v to_o remove_v the_o king_n of_o denmark_n and_o his_o troop_n pass_v over_o all_o the_o country_n and_o the_o precedent_n be_v then_o secure_v the_o pastor_n apply_v to_o the_o king_n council_n who_o then_o take_v the_o government_n of_o the_o country_n to_o cause_v she_o to_o be_v seize_v she_o immediate_o after_o go_v for_o hambourg_n with_o one_o maid_n leave_v her_o friend_n in_o the_o house_n which_o she_o have_v buy_v but_o some_o week_n before_o and_o the_o king_n army_n come_v into_o the_o country_n and_o ravage_v every_o where_o and_o they_o who_o will_v not_o tolerate_v a_o servant_n of_o god_n who_o can_v do_v they_o nothing_o but_o good_a both_o for_o body_n and_o soul_n be_v force_v to_o suffer_v private_a and_o public_a hardship_n which_o be_v long_o and_o severe_a enough_o lxxiv_o hambourg_n she_o come_v to_o hambourg_n the_o last_o of_o march_n 1676._o where_o there_o be_v appearance_n she_o may_v live_v long_o enough_o retire_o in_o a_o place_n who_o freedom_n greatness_n and_o trade_n keep_v they_o from_o take_v exact_a notice_n of_o stranger_n and_o private_a person_n that_o live_v there_o the_o first_o traverse_v she_o meet_v with_o be_v that_o she_o can_v find_v no_o where_o a_o free_a chamber_n where_o she_o may_v live_v retire_v so_o that_o after_o have_v wait_v all_o day_n she_o be_v force_v to_o go_v lodge_n in_o a_o soldier_n be_v house_n who_o offer_v she_o a_o little_a chamber_n where_o she_o stay_v fifteen_o month_n for_o want_n of_o a_o retreat_n elsewhere_o in_o the_o spring_n time_n she_o apply_v herself_o to_o make_v a_o little_a garden_n of_o a_o court_n which_o be_v useless_a to_o the_o lodging_n and_o accommodate_v it_o very_o well_o and_o profitable_o she_o repair_v and_o whiten_v her_o chamber_n and_o a_o part_n of_o the_o lodging_n wash_v she_o own_o linen_n and_o serve_v herself_o in_o every_o thing_n except_o the_o buy_v of_o provision_n not_o dare_v to_o go_v abroad_o lest_o she_o shall_v meet_v with_o some_o of_o her_o acquaintance_n she_o be_v most_o exact_a in_o all_o the_o outward_a thing_n which_o necessity_n and_o good_a order_n require_v and_o say_v this_o please_a god_n more_o than_o the_o most_o sublime_a contemplation_n which_o often_o gratify_v self-love_n and_o thereafter_o give_v occasion_n of_o disorder_n and_o displeasure_n to_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o confusion_n that_o negligence_n have_v bring_v in_o outward_a thing_n whereas_o outward_a labour_n even_o in_o the_o mean_a thing_n humble_v the_o heart_n simplify_v it_o beget_v a_o entire_a and_o exact_a submission_n to_o god_n a_o laudable_a charity_n and_o care_n for_o our_o neighbour_n and_o a_o certain_a repose_n and_o contentment_n of_o soul_n which_o do_v more_o satisfy_v s._n joseph_n in_o be_v a_o carpenter_n than_o be_v the_o doctor_n of_o the_o law_n in_o preach_v in_o moses_n chair_n she_o tell_v how_o s._n terese_n have_v begin_v to_o write_v one_o of_o her_o sublimest_n work_v and_o have_v interrupt_v it_o for_o to_o spin_v when_o her_o religious_a nun_n beg_v she_o will_v continue_v to_o write_v she_o answer_v they_o that_o she_o must_v first_o have_v do_v with_o her_o distaff_n this_o a._n b._n tell_v sometime_o smile_v to_o those_o who_o will_v persuade_v she_o not_o to_o employ_v herself_o in_o outward_a labour_n that_o she_o may_v bestow_v all_o her_o time_n in_o write_v spiritual_a thing_n lxxv_o there_o she_o write_v then_o the_o second_o part_n of_o solid_a virtue_n and_o the_o excellent_a preface_n to_o the_o renovation_n of_o the_o evangelical_n spirit_n and_o the_o preface_n before_o the_o blindness_n of_o man_n now_o adays_o for_o she_o resolve_v to_o prepare_v all_o her_o write_n to_o be_v publish_v after_o that_o god_n have_v make_v know_v to_o she_o that_o such_o be_v his_o will_n for_o by_o they_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v preach_v through_o all_o the_o world_n there_o be_v several_a person_n who_o come_v to_o she_o at_o this_o time_n from_o several_a part_n and_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o truth_n offer_v she_o all_o the_o service_n they_o be_v capable_a of_o and_o she_o offer_v they_o always_o unto_o god_n that_o she_o may_v know_v how_o to_o behave_v with_o they_o she_o be_v again_o surround_v with_o affliction_n on_o all_o side_n in_o sleswick_n her_o friend_n be_v rob_v beat_v and_o wound_v by_o the_o soldier_n and_o rabble_n and_o force_v to_o leave_v the_o lodging_n and_o flee_v into_o the_o wood_n and_o from_o thence_o through_o the_o snow_n into_o the_o town_n of_o kiel_n in_o noordstrand_n the_o peasant_n steal_v the_o beast_n and_o other_o good_n she_o have_v buy_v with_o her_o money_n her_o friend_n there_o neglect_v to_o sue_v after_o they_o she_o herself_o at_o hambourg_n be_v seize_v with_o some_o fit_n of_o sickness_n which_o bring_v she_o very_o low_a and_o perceive_v that_o some_o friend_n who_o be_v then_o with_o she_o be_v trouble_v with_o the_o thought_n of_o her_o being_n to_o be_v take_v from_o they_o short_o by_o death_n she_o say_v why_o do_v you_o make_v such_o reckon_a of_o i_o i_o be_o nothing_o but_o a_o human_a creature_n fix_v upon_o god_n and_o cleave_v to_o he_o from_o he_o you_o must_v call_v for_o help_n him_z you_o must_v strive_v to_o please_v you_o be_v to_o have_v no_o concern_v at_o all_o for_o i_o as_o to_o my_o person_n it_o be_v to_o god_n only_o and_o to_o his_o spirit_n that_o you_o must_v cleave_v if_o i_o come_v to_o die_v what_o matter_n it_o you_o must_v not_o for_o this_o leave_v off_o in_o the_o least_o to_o cleave_v unto_o god_n and_o continue_v faithful_a unto_o he_o if_o you_o trust_v in_o i_o you_o will_v deceive_v yourselves_o i_o may_v die_v as_o any_o other_o person_n and_o if_o god_n do_v not_o still_o preserve_v my_o life_n as_o by_o a_o miracle_n amid_o so_o much_o weakness_n and_o peril_n i_o shall_v have_v be_v dead_a already_o a_o thousand_o time_n they_o be_v so_o persuade_v of_o this_o particular_a protection_n of_o god_n that_o it_o make_v they_o too_o confident_a that_o god_n will_v yet_o preserve_v her_o life_n for_o a_o long_a time_n one_o of_o they_o say_v to_o she_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o you_o can_v die_v so_o soon_o whatever_o evil_a befall_v you_o and_o i_o say_v she_o do_v certain_o believe_v i_o may_v die_v even_o at_o this_o moment_n what_o reason_n have_v you_o to_o believe_v the_o contrary_a because_o reply_v he_o god_n have_v give_v you_o promise_v which_o be_v not_o yet_o fulfil_v and_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o god_n will_v not_o be_v want_v in_o his_o word_n he_o have_v promise_v that_o you_o shall_v have_v child_n who_o shall_v imitate_v you_o
redeemer_n of_o mankind_n that_o none_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v save_v but_o by_o his_o intercession_n and_o merit_n that_o he_o become_v their_o pledge_n and_o surety_n and_o effective_o pay_v the_o penalty_n that_o he_o clothe_v himself_o with_o our_o mortality_n and_o give_v himself_o in_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o his_o brethren_n that_o from_o his_o life_n his_o action_n his_o suffering_n and_o death_n do_v flow_v all_o the_o save_a mean_n both_o outward_a and_o inward_a that_o be_v necessary_a for_o remove_v the_o horrid_a corruption_n of_o mankind_n both_o as_o to_o body_n and_o soul_n for_o destroy_v in_o we_o all_o evil_a all_o wickedness_n and_o the_o image_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o for_o recover_v we_o unto_o and_o perfect_v we_o in_o holiness_n and_o in_o the_o love_n and_o image_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o true_a orthodox_n christian_n doctrine_n as_o to_o the_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o many_o of_o her_o expression_n be_v so_o misunderstand_v upon_o this_o subject_a seem_v to_o be_v that_o she_o endeavour_v to_o undeceive_v such_o as_o soothe_a and_o flatter_v themselves_o in_o the_o looseness_n and_o irregularity_n of_o their_o life_n from_o the_o pretence_n of_o the_o utter_a impossibility_n to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o the_o full_a satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o penalty_n pay_v by_o he_o by_o declare_v distinct_o that_o as_o jesus_n christ_n have_v do_v enough_o on_o his_o part_n for_o their_o salvation_n procure_v they_o pardon_n and_o time_n to_o repent_v and_o grace_n to_o return_v to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n so_o they_o must_v do_v what_o be_v require_v on_o their_o part_n repent_v and_o return_v to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o instruction_n and_o command_v jesus_n christ_n leave_v with_o they_o be_v the_o necessary_a mean_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o it_o if_o we_o will_v reign_v with_o christ_n we_o must_v suffer_v with_o he_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o vulgar_a way_n of_o explain_v this_o doctrine_n have_v too_o great_a a_o tendency_n to_o the_o flatter_v of_o corrupt_a nature_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o antinomian_o be_v now_o own_a by_o many_o and_o as_o to_o man_n practice_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o all_o what_o need_n be_v there_o then_o to_o caution_n against_o so_o damnable_a a_o principle_n and_o grant_v once_o that_o none_o can_v be_v save_v by_o jesus_n christ_n but_o they_o who_o follow_v his_o life_n and_o doctrine_n and_o the_o sentiment_n of_o a._n b._n will_v allow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o high_a sense_n that_o may_v show_v god_n indignation_n against_o sin_n his_o compassion_n to_o sinner_n his_o regard_n to_o the_o holiness_n and_o authority_n of_o his_o law_n and_o may_v lay_v a_o powerful_a obligation_n upon_o man_n not_o to_o trample_v upon_o they_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o satisfaction_n have_v be_v explain_v and_o clear_v by_o the_o reverend_n dr._n stillingfleet_n dr._n outram_n dr._n scot_n and_o other_o and_o i_o know_v none_o who_o esteem_v the_o sentiment_n of_o a._n b._n who_o will_v not_o thus_o cordial_o embrace_v it_o how_o unjust_a and_o injurious_a the_o author_n be_v in_o this_o matter_n to_o a._n b._n evident_o appear_v by_o the_o 6_o and_o 8_o letter_n of_o the_o three_o part_n of_o lum_n en_fw-fr tenebres_fw-fr the_o last_o whereof_o be_v subjoin_v to_o this_o apology_n among_o some_o other_o translate_v into_o english_a the_o occasion_n of_o these_o expression_n cite_v by_o the_o author_n upon_o which_o he_o ground_n this_o accusation_n be_v a_o peculiar_a sentiment_n of_o a._n b._n that_o such_o be_v god_n love_n to_o mankind_n and_o his_o delight_n with_o the_o child_n of_o man_n that_o he_o design_v to_o become_v like_a to_o man_n as_o he_o have_v make_v man_n like_o to_o himself_o that_o there_o may_v be_v mutual_a contentment_n in_o a_o mutual_a likeness_n and_o he_o may_v live_v spiritual_o and_o bodily_a with_o man_n to_o all_o eternity_n even_o though_o man_n have_v never_o sin_v yea_o that_o he_o unite_v himself_o to_o the_o humane_a nature_n from_o the_o beginning_n in_o the_o first_o bear_v in_o adam_n etc._n and_o after_o that_o man_n have_v plunge_v himself_o into_o sin_n and_o misery_n he_o become_v in_o all_o thing_n like_v to_o he_o yet_o without_o sin_n that_o he_o may_v redeem_v and_o save_v they_o now_o the_o only_a difference_n between_o this_o and_o the_o general_o receive_v doctrine_n lie_v in_o these_o two_o that_o god_n will_v have_v become_v man_n though_o adam_n have_v not_o sin_v and_o that_o he_o unite_v himself_o to_o man_n nature_n even_o in_o the_o beginning_n which_o the_o author_n if_o he_o please_v may_v look_v upon_o as_o dream_n since_o no_o body_n say_v they_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n she_o may_v well_o have_v use_v these_o expression_n cite_v by_o the_o author_n without_o deny_v thereby_o any_o satisfaction_n by_o jesus_n christ_n 139._o she_o give_v good_a reason_n for_o say_v that_o god_n have_v no_o need_n to_o become_v man_n to_o redeem_v we_o he_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o any_o necessity_n that_o he_o may_v have_v suffer_v man_n to_o perish_v eternal_o and_o create_v a_o thousand_o adam_n and_o a_o thousand_o earthly_a paradices_fw-la with_o the_o same_o perfection_n in_o which_o he_o create_v the_o first_o out_o of_o nothing_o she_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o jesus_n christ_n come_v to_o redeem_v man_n must_v suffer_v and_o so_o the_o text_n the_o author_n bring_v to_o prove_v this_o be_v needless_a but_o affirm_v that_o god_n will_v have_v become_v man_n though_o adam_n have_v not_o sin_v and_o the_o reason_n why_o she_o say_v he_o will_v needs_o suffer_v and_o die_v by_o accident_n for_o the_o instruction_n and_o relief_n of_o man_n be_v because_o she_o be_v persuade_v that_o sin_n come_v into_o the_o world_n by_o accident_n by_o man_n abuse_n of_o his_o free_a will_n against_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o first_o and_o essential_a design_n that_o he_o have_v in_o create_v man_n which_o be_v that_o he_o may_v take_v his_o delight_n with_o he_o and_o not_o that_o man_n may_v sin_v and_o thereby_o give_v he_o a_o occasion_n to_o magnify_v his_o ●ustice_n and_o mercy_n and_o god_n primary_n design_n in_o become_a man_n be_v that_o he_o may_v make_v a_o eternal_a alliance_n with_o man_n and_o man●s_v fall_v into_o sin_n give_v occasion_n to_o his_o prosecute_n his_o first_o design_n by_o a_o state_n of_o humiliation_n and_o suffer_v that_o so_o he_o may_v recover_v fall_v man._n although_o jesus_n christ_n do_v high_o glorify_v god_n by_o the_o divine_a virtue_n of_o meekness_n patience_n charity_n etc._n etc._n manifest_v by_o he_o in_o his_o suffering_n yet_o certain_o the_o unworthy_a treatment_n he_o meet_v with_o in_o the_o world_n from_o those_o who_o he_o come_v to_o save_v must_v needs_o be_v matter_n of_o the_o great_a grief_n and_o sorrow_n to_o those_o pious_a soul_n that_o behold_v it_o and_o to_o all_o that_o ever_o know_v it_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n though_o that_o day_n in_o the_o behold_v whereof_o the_o father_n in_o the_o ancient_a law_n be_v say_v to_o rejoice_v be_v interpret_v of_o the_o day_n of_o his_o second_o come_v in_o glory_n and_o not_o of_o his_o first_o come_v to_o suffer_v the_o author_n be_v great_o mistake_v in_o what_o he_o call_v her_o second_o argument_n as_o if_o she_o affirm_v that_o none_o of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n speak_v of_o jesus_n christ_n come_v to_o suffer_v for_o all_o that_o she_o affirm_v be_v 142._o that_o if_o you_o read_v attentive_o the_o prophet_n you_o will_v find_v they_o speak_v much_o more_o of_o his_o come_v in_o glory_n than_o of_o that_o in_o reproach_n and_o there_o have_v be_v occasion_n give_v of_o mistake_v the_o passage_n cite_v by_o the_o author_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 22d_o p._n of_o his_o preface_n by_o the_o trnslation_n of_o it_o for_o it_o import_v no_o more_o in_o the_o original_a but_o that_o of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n who_o foretell_v the_o come_v of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o flesh_n many_o of_o they_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o his_o suffering_n x._o scripture_n the_o author_n be_v most_o injurious_a to_o a._n b._n in_o allege_v for_o a_o 6_o accusation_n that_o she_o join_v with_o the_o quaker_n in_o the_o design_n of_o lead_v man_n from_o the_o use_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o contrary_a be_v most_o evident_a in_o all_o her_o write_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o apology_n etc._n she_o think_v the_o scripture_n contain_v the_o true_a spiritual_a food_n and_o nourishment_n of_o soul_n and_o the_o preservation_n of_o they_o in_o
nature_n than_o accomplish_v their_o proper_a wi_n to_o be_v perfect_o cure_v of_o original_a corruption_n be_v the_o privilege_n only_o of_o the_o bless_a even_o they_o who_o be_v sanctify_v from_o the_o womb_n do_v while_o they_o be_v in_o this_o life_n feel_v and_o be_v oblige_v to_o resist_v the_o importunity_n of_o corrupt_a nature_n the_o doctor_n add_v fail_n that_o neither_o here_o nor_o any_o where_o else_o do_v a._n b._n give_v any_o instance_n of_o her_o fault_n except_o some_o levities_n before_o she_o be_v sixteen_o year_n old_a and_o that_o she_o do_v not_o any_o where_o own_o the_o have_v sin_n i_o entreat_v that_o it_o be_v remark_v that_o what_o the_o doctor_n here_o diminish_o call_v some_o levities_n be_v by_o he_o egregious_o aggravate_v in_o his_o first_o narrative_n sect._n xx_o here_o he_o can_v find_v no_o instance_n of_o her_o fault_n and_o there_o he_o think_v he_o discover_v too_o many_o here_o he_o represent_v she_o as_o no_o where_o own_v that_o she_o have_v sin_n there_o he_o introduce_v she_o confess_v that_o she_o have_v run_v into_o a_o vain_a light_n and_o idle_a conversation_n follow_v the_o pleasure_n recreation_n and_o divertisement_n of_o the_o world_n and_o this_o scene_n of_o her_o life_n when_o he_o think_v it_o seasonable_a for_o he_o so_o to_o do_v he_o delineate_v in_o all_o the_o shape_n of_o horror_n tell_v we_o 49._o that_o she_o suffer_v a_o eclipse_n for_o some_o year_n pride_n and_o ambition_n sensuality_n and_o covetousness_n prevail_v on_o she_o that_o she_o resist_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o walk_v contrary_a to_o the_o dictate_v of_o her_o conscience_n video_fw-la meliora_fw-la in_o effect_n he_o turn_v she_o into_o what_o form_n he_o please_v sometime_o she_o must_v be_v a_o goddess_n and_o at_o other_o time_n a_o very_a devil_n i_o judge_v that_o it_o will_v be_v evident_a to_o any_o impartial_a person_n author_n that_o the_o doctor_n have_v deal_v very_o unfair_o by_o that_o passage_n which_o he_o cite_v at_o the_o close_a of_o pag._n 5._o i_o shall_v set_v it_o down_o entire_a i_o spend_v say_v she_o most_o of_o my_o time_n all_o alone_a in_o my_o chamber_n in_o prayer_n and_o tear_n and_o great_a grief_n for_o my_o have_v thus_o follow_v the_o way_v of_o the_o world_n 150._o i_o enter_v upon_o a_o very_a austere_a life_n use_v hard_a bed_n fast_v watch_a and_o wear_v sackcloth_n that_o so_o i_o may_v chastise_v my_o body_n i_o visit_v the_o poor_a and_o sick_a i_o frequent_v the_o church_n and_o sacrament_n not_o know_v by_o what_o mean_v i_o may_v be_v restore_v to_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n which_o i_o have_v lose_v by_o my_o own_o fault_n i_o can_v not_o sleep_v at_o night_n fear_v lest_o i_o shall_v go_v down_o to_o hell_n for_o i_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o i_o dare_v not_o shut_v my_o eye_n because_o of_o my_o sin_n which_o appear_v to_o i_o so_o great_a as_o none_o have_v ever_o commit_v the_o like_a not_o because_o i_o have_v do_v any_o wicked_a or_o evil_n action_n for_o all_o man_n esteem_v and_o honour_v i_o but_o because_o i_o have_v part_v with_o the_o ravish_a intercourse_n which_o my_o soul_n have_v with_o god_n that_o i_o may_v take_v my_o pleasure_n in_o the_o divertisement_n of_o the_o world_n after_o i_o have_v receive_v so_o many_o favour_n from_o god_n as_o merit_v my_o acknowledgement_n throughout_o all_o my_o life_n this_o sin_n appear_v to_o i_o so_o great_a as_o hell_n have_v no_o punishment_n answerable_a to_o it_o i_o shall_v think_v it_o have_v be_v impossible_a for_o any_o body_n after_o have_v peruse_v this_o passage_n to_o write_v at_o the_o rate_n the_o doctor_n do_v without_o firm_o resolve_v to_o cross_v all_o the_o dictate_v of_o ingenuity_n and_o candour_n be_v this_o then_o no_o where_o to_o own_o that_o she_o have_v sin_n and_o to_o justify_v every_o thing_n that_o she_o say_v or_o do_v be_v there_o no_o instance_n of_o fault_n give_v here_o or_o do_v the_o doctor_n think_v that_o follow_v the_o world_n or_o turn_v the_o heart_n from_o god_n though_o but_o for_o some_o time_n and_o not_o in_o the_o high_a degree_n be_v but_o little_a veniai_fw-fr levities_n be_v there_o here_o no_o penitential_a acknowledgement_n make_v neither_o general_n nor_o particular_a what_o will_v the_o doctor_n have_v be_v there_o not_o here_o ingenuous_a confession_n of_o very_a great_a fault_n and_o a_o very_a deep_a and_o sensible_a sorrow_n for_o they_o do_v she_o not_o high_o aggravate_v they_o both_z as_o to_o the_o gild_n they_o include_v and_o the_o punishment_n they_o deserve_v and_o do_v she_o not_o on_o the_o account_n of_o they_o put_v in_o practice_n the_o severity_n of_o mortification_n and_o self-denial_n be_v the_o doctor_n angry_a because_o she_o be_v not_o a_o great_a sinner_n or_o will_v her_o be_v so_o have_v recommend_v she_o the_o more_o to_o he_o the_o doctor_n translate_v 6._o that_o period_n word_n point_fw-fr que_fw-fr j'eusse_fw-fr fait_fw-fr aucunes_fw-fr manuvaises_fw-fr action_n very_o disingenous_o thus_o that_o she_o have_v never_o do_v evil_a whereas_o he_o shall_v have_v turn_v it_o you_o see_v not_o that_o she_o have_v do_v any_o wicked_a or_o evil_a action_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o never_o have_v do_v evil_a and_o not_o have_v do_v any_o wicked_a action_n the_o doctor_n be_v translation_n which_o be_v neither_o literal_a nor_o true_a though_o it_o serve_v his_o present_a turn_n make_v a._n b._n pretend_v to_o a_o absolute_a innocence_n and_o guiltlessness_n but_o by_o the_o other_o which_o be_v a_o just_a one_o the_o reader_n easy_o see_v that_o her_o word_n import_v only_o that_o she_o have_v not_o do_v any_o outward_a action_n that_o be_v gross_a and_o scandalous_a but_o than_o it_o be_v very_o possible_a that_o one_o may_v be_v guilty_a of_o have_v do_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o evil_n inward_o and_o in_o his_o heart_n though_o he_o have_v never_o commit_v any_o gross_a and_o visible_a immorality_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o passage_n be_v evident_a not_o only_o from_o the_o scope_n of_o this_o whole_a paragraph_n but_o particular_o from_o the_o reason_n that_o she_o there_o assign_v namely_o that_o eveevery_n one_o esteem_v and_o honour_v she_o they_o do_v so_o because_o they_o discover_v nothing_o in_o her_o outward_a carriage_n but_o what_o be_v modest_a sober_a and_o agreeable_a and_o i_o think_v none_o that_o consider_v well_o what_o they_o read_v will_v make_v any_o scruple_n to_o admit_v this_o as_o a_o sufficient_a reason_n for_o what_o she_o assert_v though_o the_o doctor_n insinuate_v some_o will_n and_o thus_o though_o a._n b._n refuse_v that_o in_o the_o circumstance_n in_o which_o she_o then_o be_v she_o have_v not_o do_v any_o action_n that_o be_v visible_o scandalous_a yet_o with_o the_o same_o breath_n she_o acknowledge_v very_o penitent_o that_o she_o be_v guilty_a of_o very_o great_a evil_n in_o suffer_v the_o world_n to_o gain_v ground_n on_o her_o heart_n now_o though_o the_o doctor_n promise_v his_o reader_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o narrative_n that_o he_o will_v give_v they_o a._n b_n pretence_n in_o her_o own_o word_n and_o not_o curtail_v passage_n yet_o let_v any_o that_o be_v unbiased_a judge_v if_o he_o have_v do_v so_o here_o and_o whether_o the_o nice_a and_o inquisitive_n have_v not_o need_v to_o consult_v her_o write_n and_o rather_o believe_v their_o own_o eye_n than_o his_o partial_a account_n and_o whether_o in_o fine_a though_o he_o engage_v in_o his_o letter_n pag._n 28._o that_o he_o will_v be_v as_o faithful_a in_o relate_v matter_n of_o fact_n according_a to_o his_o knowledge_n as_o if_o he_o be_v a_o witness_n upon_o oath_n whether_o i_o say_v this_o promise_n of_o he_o can_v be_v a_o sufficient_a security_n for_o rely_v on_o his_o testimony_n if_o it_o be_v find_v that_o he_o fall_v frequent_o into_o such_o inadvertency_n or_o misrepresentation_n as_o these_o the_o doctor_n set_v down_o the_o return_n which_o she_o make_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o m._n serarius_n very_o faint_o other_o i_o will_v impart_v to_o you_o some_o period_n of_o it_o 115._o in_o effect_n say_v she_o my_o only_a fear_n be_v lest_o i_o shall_v not_o continue_v faithful_a to_o my_o god_n and_o i_o can_v bear_v with_o they_o who_o say_v or_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o state_n of_o perfection_n in_o this_o world_n wherein_o man_n be_v impeccable_a i_o look_v upon_o this_o as_o a_o great_a error_n and_o self-presumption_n in_o they_o and_o then_o he_o tell_v m._n serarius_n how_o he_o be_v present_a when_o she_o rehearse_v before_o several_a person_n the_o account_n of_o the_o great_a defection_n of_o her_o youth_n which_o she_o here_o relate_v again_o with_o a_o fresh_a sorrow_n and_o
they_o will_v not_o be_v reduce_v from_o their_o suppose_a error_n by_o noise_n and_o banter_n all_o to_o the_o best_a of_o my_o understanding_n that_o a._n b._n pretend_v to_o be_v only_o to_o be_v a_o instrument_n in_o christ_n hand_n and_o that_o no_o otherwise_o than_o by_o publish_v these_o truth_n that_o he_o by_o his_o spirit_n communicate_v to_o she_o and_o which_o his_o power_n and_o grace_n alone_o be_v afterward_o to_o make_v effectual_a now_o let_v it_o be_v suppose_v but_o not_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v so_o what_o disparagement_n be_v it_o to_o our_o redeemer_n to_o make_v use_n of_o a_o poor_a contemptible_a creature_n in_o order_n to_o accomplish_v great_a design_n be_v it_o any_o dishonour_n to_o he_o that_o his_o apostle_n in_o his_o name_n and_o power_n convert_v more_o to_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o wrought_v more_o miracle_n than_o he_o do_v himself_o when_o he_o dwell_v in_o mortal_a flesh_n v._o himself_o perhaps_o it_o may_v be_v think_v i_o be_o bias_v in_o favour_n of_o a._n b._n and_o therefore_o not_o so_o capable_a to_o discern_v that_o latet_fw-la anguis_fw-la in_o herba_fw-la i_o be_o sure_a if_o i_o be_o so_o my_o prejudices_fw-la be_v of_o no_o old_a date_n they_o be_v not_o yet_o so_o root_v but_o sober_a and_o just_a reason_n may_v discuss_v they_o and_o reclaim_v i_o from_o my_o mistake_v neither_o i_o think_v can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o have_v be_v fortify_v from_o any_o prospect_n of_o reputation_n or_o worldly_a interest_n but_o whatever_o my_o prejudices_fw-la may_v be_v i_o can_v sincere_o declare_v that_o what_o determine_v i_o to_o have_v a_o esteem_n for_o this_o person_n be_v write_n be_v a_o conviction_n that_o they_o not_o only_o recommend_v the_o great_a and_o essential_a duty_n of_o the_o gospel_n distinguish_v they_o from_o the_o accessory_n discover_v the_o mischief_n of_o sect_n and_o party_n and_o the_o vanity_n of_o lay_v stress_n on_o nice_a and_o airy_a speculation_n but_o also_o because_o they_o suggest_v solid_a principle_n which_o may_v serve_v as_o a_o antidote_n against_o the_o infusion_n of_o atheist_n and_o deist_n pelagian_n and_o socinian_o antinomian_o and_o fatalist_n and_o false_a pretence_n to_o inspiration_n and_o though_o i_o meet_v with_o some_o thing_n in_o they_o that_o seem_v a_o little_a odd_a and_o startle_a yet_o i_o choose_v rather_o to_o suspend_v my_o judgement_n since_o even_o herself_o do_v not_o impose_v they_o on_o any_o than_o forego_v what_o appear_v to_o i_o so_o very_o solid_a and_o useful_a some_o letter_n of_o m._n ant._n bourignon_n whereby_o her_o true_a christian_a spirit_n and_o sentiment_n be_v far_o justify_v and_o vindicate_v particular_o as_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o three_o and_o four_o letter_n all_o of_o they_o be_v most_o worthy_a to_o be_v peruse_v by_o those_o who_o sincere_o love_v and_o impartial_o seek_v after_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n letter_n i._o concern_v the_o love_n of_o god_n write_a to_o a_o pastor_n at_o mechlin_n and_o be_v the_o 15_o of_o la_fw-fr lum_n nec_fw-la en_fw-fr tenebr_fw-fr part_n i._n sir_n i._o good_n i_o know_v not_o how_o one_o of_o sound_a judgement_n can_v love_v any_o other_o thing_n but_o god_n see_v there_o be_v no_o create_a thing_n that_o be_v worthy_a of_o our_o love_n as_o he_o be_v be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o good_a wisdom_n the_o giver_n of_o all_o wisdom_n the_o beauty_n that_o create_v all_o beauty_n the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o righteous_a the_o goodness_n of_o all_o goodness_n the_o accomplishment_n of_o all_o perfection_n in_o short_a the_o only_a object_n worthy_a of_o our_o love_n without_o who_o nothing_o be_v lovely_a neither_o in_o heaven_n nor_o in_o earth_n nothing_o without_o he_o can_v satisfy_v our_o soul_n nothing_o can_v content_v it_o nothing_o can_v give_v it_o perfect_a pleasure_n nothing_o can_v make_v it_o happy_a neither_o now_o nor_o hereafter_o it_o be_v he_o who_o create_v we_o it_o be_v he_o who_o preserve_v we_o it_o be_v he_o who_o will_v judge_v we_o if_o good_a of_o its_o own_o nature_n be_v always_o lovely_a why_o then_o do_v not_o the_o soul_n employ_v all_o its_o power_n to_o love_v the_o original_a the_o perfection_n and_o the_o consummation_n of_o all_o good_a which_o be_v god_n ii_o he_o if_o likeness_n beget_v love_n how_o can_v your_o soul_n which_o be_v make_v after_o the_o similitude_n of_o god_n live_v without_o love_v he_o what_o other_o lovely_a object_n can_v it_o find_v without_o god_n who_o only_o it_o resemble_v what_o original_a or_o pattern_n be_v there_o among_o all_o perish_a thing_n to_o this_o divine_a and_o immortal_a soul_n which_o can_v find_v its_o like_a but_o in_o god_n himself_o iii_o body_n if_o benefit_n do_v oblige_v even_o nature_n itself_o to_o love_v its_o benefactor_n how_o ought_v the_o soul_n to_o love_v its_o god_n when_o he_o have_v give_v it_o all_o that_o it_o possese_v and_o have_v promise_v infinite_a and_o eternal_a good_n beyond_o comparison_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v he_o have_v give_v the_o soul_n which_o he_o create_v of_o nothing_o he_o not_o only_o make_v it_o after_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n but_o after_o the_o likeness_n of_o god_n himself_o so_o that_o all_o soul_n be_v by_o creation_n make_v little_a go_n can_v this_o god_n of_o love_n give_v unto_o man_n great_a good_n and_o gift_n to_o make_v himself_o be_v love_v by_o he_o than_o this_o divine_a creation_n of_o his_o soul_n immortal_a as_o himself_o the_o body_n which_o he_o form_v to_o be_v the_o keeper_n and_o sheath_n of_o this_o soul_n can_v it_o have_v more_o perfection_n be_v there_o any_o thing_n in_o nature_n more_o admirable_a than_o the_o body_n of_o man_n animate_v with_o all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o soul_n with_o a_o understanding_n to_o conceive_v with_o a_o memory_n to_o remember_v with_o a_o will_v to_o act_v so_o that_o the_o very_a body_n be_v in_o some_o manner_n a_o image_n or_o resemblance_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n iv._o body_n can_v god_n give_v unto_o man_n more_o and_o great_a gift_n than_o he_o have_v do_v to_o oblige_v he_o to_o love_v he_o for_o after_o have_v give_v he_o a_o be_v and_o life_n he_o uphold_v and_o maintain_v it_o with_o all_o necessary_a thing_n which_o he_o have_v likewise_o create_v for_o the_o entertainment_n of_o this_o man_n to_o who_o he_o have_v subject_v so_o many_o creature_n under_o his_o power_n have_v make_v he_o superior_a over_o all_o the_o live_a creature_n and_o give_v he_o authority_n as_o the_o masterpiece_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n the_o earth_n for_o his_o footstool_n the_o air_n to_o breath_n in_o the_o fire_n to_o warm_v he_o the_o water_n to_o refresh_v he_o the_o fruit_n to_o nourish_v he_o the_o flower_n to_o recreate_v he_o in_o short_a all_o the_o visible_a and_o material_a thing_n that_o god_n create_v be_v only_o for_o the_o body_n of_o man._n what_o must_v he_o have_v lay_v up_o for_o his_o soul_n which_o be_v beyond_o all_o comparison_n more_o valuable_a as_o be_v divine_a create_v after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n if_o he_o have_v make_v so_o many_o admirable_a thing_n for_o the_o entertainment_n of_o the_o body_n which_o must_v die_v and_o remain_v for_o so_o short_a a_o time_n upon_o earth_n shall_v not_o all_o those_o gift_n all_o those_o benefit_n oblige_v man_n to_o love_v such_o a_o benefactor_n see_v he_o have_v not_o receive_v and_o can_v never_o receive_v any_o true_a good_a without_o this_o giver_n of_o all_o good_n v._o man._n how_o can_v he_o be_v without_o love_v he_o when_o he_o consider_v his_o love_n which_o be_v not_o satisfy_v with_o have_v free_o impart_v unto_o we_o so_o many_o gift_n but_o after_o that_o this_o ungrateful_a man_n have_v abuse_v so_o many_o favour_n by_o turn_v away_o from_o his_o creator_n to_o join_v himself_o to_o the_o creature_n value_v the_o gift_n more_o than_o the_o giver_n presume_v to_o merit_v yet_o more_o he_o rebel_v against_o his_o order_n will_v needs_o out_o of_o ambition_n of_o spirit_n know_v more_o than_o it_o please_v his_o creator_n and_o break_v his_o commandment_n that_o he_o may_v equal_v himself_o unto_o he_o this_o god_n of_o love_n who_o in_o a_o moment_n can_v have_v punish_v all_o these_o ingratitude_n by_o a_o eternal_a damnation_n unto_o which_o he_o have_v banish_v the_o fall_v angel_n love_a man_n more_o than_o the_o angel_n and_o have_v more_o regard_n to_o the_o love_n he_o bear_v he_o than_o to_o his_o disobedience_n he_o pardon_v his_o sin_n and_o forgive_v his_o fault_n upon_o condition_n of_o a_o temporal_a penitence_n vi_o inacrnation_n this_o testimony_n of_o affection_n from_o a_o god_n towards_o his_o creature_n
sin_n since_o which_o time_n it_o can_v produce_v nothing_o but_o all_o sort_n of_o evil_a it_o be_v impossible_a for_o it_o to_o do_v any_o good_a or_o to_o have_v one_o good_a thought_n for_o this_o cause_n job_n have_v good_a reason_n to_o curse_v the_o day_n of_o his_o birth_n for_o none_o of_o the_o beast_n will_v be_v so_o miserable_a in_o their_o nature_n as_o be_v man_n if_o he_o have_v not_o in_o he_o a_o divine_a nature_n 4._o all_o must_v grant_v this_o and_o say_v with_o your_o friend_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n see_v he_o live_v supernatural_o have_v subject_v his_o humane_a part_n to_o his_o divine_a and_o make_v his_o flesh_n die_v that_o he_o may_v live_v to_o his_o spirit_n and_o despise_v temporal_a thing_n that_o he_o may_v embrace_v eternal_a but_o i_o will_v glad_o ask_v all_o those_o natural_a person_n if_o they_o desire_v to_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o if_o they_o have_v put_v to_o death_n the_o old_a adam_n in_o they_o that_o be_v the_o inclination_n of_o corrupt_a flesh_n and_o if_o they_o have_v labour_v with_o all_o their_o power_n to_o revive_v in_o they_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o new_a adam_n which_o contradict_v the_o sensuality_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o appear_v by_o the_o person_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o overcome_v all_o natural_a sensuality_n 5._o it_o may_v be_v they_o will_v say_v that_o it_o will_v be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o attain_v to_o such_o a_o perfection_n as_o jesus_n christ_n have_v while_o they_o will_v not_o part_v with_o so_o much_o as_o one_o of_o the_o affection_n which_o they_o have_v for_o their_o pleasure_n or_o sensuality_n that_o they_o may_v follow_v he_o at_o a_o distance_n for_o they_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o desire_v to_o imitate_v he_o far_o les_fw-fr to_o tend_v to_o his_o perfection_n they_o believe_v indeed_o by_o a_o imaginary_a speculation_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v satisfy_v all_o for_o they_o and_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v by_o a_o divine_a truth_n that_o he_o have_v merit_v for_o they_o by_o his_o suffering_n the_o grace_n and_o the_o power_n to_o imitate_v he_o because_o they_o do_v not_o desire_v to_o do_v it_o for_o they_o love_v rather_o to_o remain_v in_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o old_a adam_n than_o to_o be_v quicken_v into_o the_o new_a which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n 6._o thus_o it_o be_v that_o those_o poor_a soul_n flatter_v themselves_o to_o their_o ruin_n while_o they_o say_v that_o they_o can_v imitate_v jesus_n christ_n nor_o live_v without_o sin_n because_o of_o their_o great_a frailty_n this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o they_o resolve_v not_o to_o be_v save_v and_o they_o resolve_v to_o die_v in_o their_o sin_n for_o there_o be_v only_o two_o way_n the_o one_o of_o salvation_n the_o other_o of_o damnation_n and_o jesus_n christ_n be_v that_o which_o lead_v to_o salvation_n he_o who_o will_v not_o walk_v in_o the_o same_o way_n in_o which_o he_o walk_v can_v find_v life_n but_o without_o all_o doubt_n shall_v die_v for_o ever_o therefore_o my_o dear_a child_n do_v not_o give_v way_n to_o the_o discourse_n of_o those_o poor_a blind_v one_o who_o have_v fill_v their_o understanding_n with_o error_n but_o walk_v according_a to_o the_o light_n that_o god_n have_v give_v you_o and_o labour_n to_o be_v bear_v again_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n withdraw_v from_o the_o world_n since_o he_o say_v that_o he_o pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n but_o for_o those_o who_o his_o father_n have_v give_v he_o out_o of_o the_o world_n those_o who_o be_v of_o the_o world_n be_v they_o who_o love_v the_o transitory_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n and_o will_v not_o part_v with_o they_o to_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n they_o be_v rich_a in_o will_n and_o proud_a in_o heart_n love_v their_o fleshly_a sensuality_n while_o they_o flatter_v themselves_o by_o say_v that_o it_o will_v be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o live_v without_o sin_n because_o of_o their_o great_a frailty_n which_o if_o they_o understand_v aright_o they_o will_v use_v mean_n to_o overcome_v it_o and_o he_o who_o feel_v his_o heart_n cleave_v to_o riches_n will_v not_o possess_v they_o but_o will_v put_v they_o far_o away_o from_o he_o as_o some_o of_o the_o heathen_n do_v who_o throw_v all_o their_o money_n into_o the_o sea_n fear_v lest_o it_o shall_v deprive_v they_o of_o the_o liberty_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o if_o a_o man_n find_v himself_o so_o frail_a as_o to_o fall_v into_o the_o sin_n of_o pride_n he_o will_v shun_v office_n greatness_n and_o honour_n that_o he_o may_v follow_v the_o poverty_n and_o lowliness_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o if_o h●_n find_v himself_o so_o frail_a as_o that_o he_o can_v not_o eat_v and_o drink_v delicate_a thing_n without_o fall_v into_o the_o sin_n of_o gluttony_n he_o will_v take_v the_o coarse_a meat_n and_o drink_v proportionable_o to_o support_v the_o weakness_n and_o frailty_n of_o nature_n wean_a it_o from_o all_o sensuality_n or_o fleshly_a apperite_n but_o man_n do_v not_o feel_v themselves_o too_o frail_a to_o iudulge_v their_o body_n in_o all_o its_o appetite_n and_o pleasure_n and_o they_o will_v needs_o make_v themselves_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v too_o frail_a to_o abstain_v from_o sin_n or_o to_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n 7._o this_o sentiment_n be_v so_o erroneous_a that_o i_o will_v be_v ashune_v to_o refute_v it_o be_v it_o not_o that_o i_o see_v so_o many_o soul_n possess_v with_o it_o especial_o among_o those_o of_o calvin_n reformati●on_n who_o live_v and_o die_v in_o this_o belief_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v satisfy_v all_o for_o they_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o do_v good_a or_o to_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n this_o it_o seem_v be_v inculcate_v unto_o they_o from_o the_o cradle_n since_o in_o effect_n we_o see_v that_o all_o their_o practice_n be_v found_v upon_o it_o while_o they_o live_v according_a to_o the_o motion_n of_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o with_o this_o believe_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n without_o strive_v to_o imitate_v he_o since_o they_o be_v teach_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o do_v this_o and_o though_o this_o be_v a_o false_a theology_n yet_o every_o one_o follow_v after_o it_o lean_v upon_o a_o break_a reed_n 8._o for_o that_o man_n of_o who_o i_o speak_v to_o you_o former_o say_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o he_o to_o do_v any_o good_a work_n yea_o to_o say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n with_o attention_n no_o more_o than_o they_o with_o who_o he_o converse_v who_o he_o have_v often_o ask_v if_o they_o can_v say_v it_o with_o attention_n and_o they_o all_o answer_v they_o can_v not_o it_o be_v to_o be_v remark_v that_o they_o be_v merchant_n of_o great_a trade_n and_o spirit_n who_o find_v out_o all_o sort_n of_o invention_n for_o gain_v of_o money_n with_o great_a dexterity_n and_o care_n and_o their_o spirit_n be_v not_o disengage_v for_o say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n with_o attention_n for_o where_o their_o treasure_n be_v there_o be_v their_o heart_n and_o the_o attention_n can_v be_v perfect_a in_o two_o so_o contrary_a thing_n at_o the_o same_o time_n but_o if_o they_o have_v purge_v their_o soul_n from_o covet_v earthly_a good_n and_o as_o careful_o apply_v their_o understanding_n to_o speak_v unto_o god_n and_o to_o hear_v he_o without_o doubt_n they_o may_v not_o only_o have_v say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n with_o attention_n but_o may_v also_o have_v attention_n serious_o upon_o continual_a prayer_n which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v so_o much_o recommend_v to_o we_o say_v that_o we_o ought_v always_o to_o pray_v and_o never_o to_o cease_v 9_o but_o those_o poor_a ignorant_n think_v to_o please_v god_n with_o fair_a word_n as_o they_o please_v man_n by_o say_v that_o they_o be_v too_o frail_a to_o do_v any_o good_a far_o less_o can_v they_o imitate_v jesus_n christ_n for_o these_o excuse_n will_v condemn_v they_o for_o if_o they_o be_v true_o sensible_a of_o their_o frailty_n they_o will_v avoid_v the_o occasion_n of_o sin_n and_o use_v the_o mean_n of_o poverty_n humility_n and_o patience_n that_o they_o may_v imitate_v jesus_n christ_n for_o he_o do_v nothing_o when_o he_o be_v upon_o earth_n but_o that_o which_o another_o will_v do_v that_o be_v animate_v with_o the_o same_o spirit_n that_o he_o be_v for_o the_o same_o god_n have_v through_o all_o the_o same_o power_n and_o can_v do_v by_o the_o body_n and_o spirit_n of_o other_o man_n that_o which_o he_o do_v by_o that_o of_o jesus_n christ_n 10._o for_o in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v god_n his_o power_n be_v not_o limit_v provide_v that_o man_n give_v no_o hindrance_n
work_n be_v a_o dead_a faith_n in_o which_o while_n they_o remain_v they_o will_v never_o obtain_v salvation_n see_v a_o live_n and_o operative_a faith_n be_v necessary_a which_o can_v be_v recover_v but_o in_o the_o imitation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o otherwise_o no_o body_n can_v recover_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v merit_v for_o we_o for_o those_o only_o who_o will_v embrace_v the_o gospel_n law_n for_o it_o only_o teach_v we_o how_o to_o return_v to_o god_n and_o point_n out_o all_o the_o thing_n which_o have_v withdraw_v we_o from_o he_o 18._o if_o the_o gospel_n law_n do_v not_o tell_v i_o that_o i_o must_v be_v poor_a in_o spirit_n i_o will_v never_o have_v know_v that_o the_o good_n of_o the_o world_n can_v withdraw_v i_o from_o god_n and_o if_o the_o same_o law_n do_v not_o tell_v i_o that_o i_o must_v be_v humble_a in_o heart_n i_o will_v have_v remain_v in_o the_o pride_n in_o which_o nature_n beget_v i_o and_o if_o the_o same_o law_n do_v not_o teach_v i_o that_o i_o must_v deny_v myself_o take_v up_o my_o cross_n and_o follow_v jesus_n christ_n i_o will_v never_o have_v know_v that_o the_o love_n of_o myself_o draw_v i_o away_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n or_o that_o my_o natural_a inclination_n do_v incline_v i_o to_o sin_n i_o will_v never_o have_v do_v violence_n to_o they_o that_o i_o may_v take_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n by_o force_n but_o have_v learn_v in_o the_o school_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o truth_n of_o my_o duty_n i_o will_v follow_v they_o and_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n that_o he_o have_v purchase_v for_o i_o by_o his_o suffering_n and_o will_v not_o lean_v upon_o the_o opinion_n of_o blind_a man_n who_o take_v lie_v for_o truth_n for_o i_o know_v well_o that_o for_o i_o the_o gospel_n law_n be_v make_v and_o that_o without_o the_o observe_n of_o it_o i_o can_v be_v among_o those_o who_o the_o father_n have_v give_v unto_o jesus_n christ_n and_o for_o who_o he_o pray_v unto_o his_o father_n i_o hope_v you_o also_o will_v be_v of_o that_o number_n my_o dear_a child_n that_o have_v be_v in_o this_o world_n unite_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n we_o may_v be_v unite_v together_o with_o he_o for_o ever_o which_o she_o wish_v who_o remain_v you_o whole_o in_o god_n a._n b._n amsterdam_n jul._n 15._o 1670._o letter_n v._o a_o traveller_n to_o eternity_n mind_v not_o earthly_a thing_n to_o a_o child_n of_o god_n who_o do_v not_o sufficient_o comprehend_v that_o the_o care_n of_o this_o life_n be_v a_o hindrance_n to_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o be_v trouble_v to_o hear_v i_o say_v that_o it_o behove_v i_o to_o tarvel_v alone_o to_o eternal_a life_n see_v he_o be_v desirous_a tobear_v i_o company_n show_v he_o that_o all_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n be_v vain_a and_o when_o we_o make_v it_o our_o business_n to_o acquire_v they_o or_o to_o please_v man_n we_o be_v not_o to_o look_v for_o a_o eternal_a reward_n this_o be_v the_o twelve_o of_o la_fw-fr lum_n née_fw-fr en_fw-fr tenebr_fw-fr part_n four_o my_o dear_a child_n 1._o i_o know_v that_o you_o be_v trouble_v to_o hear_v i_o say_v that_o i_o be_o all_o alone_a in_o the_o world_n since_o you_o desire_v to_o accompany_v and_o follow_v i_o your_o desire_n be_v good_a in_o this_o but_o my_o proposition_n be_v true_a that_o i_o be_o all_o alone_a in_o the_o way_n through_o which_o god_n lead_v i_o you_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v trouble_v to_o hear_v the_o truth_n but_o rather_o to_o discover_v what_o must_v be_v do_v to_o accompany_v i_o i_o travel_v towards_o eternity_n and_o i_o see_v all_o the_o world_n travel_v towards_o the_o land_n of_o their_o banishment_n which_o be_v this_o miserable_a world_n after_o which_o every_o one_o aspire_v for_o i_o have_v not_o yet_o find_v one_o person_n who_o seek_v nothing_o but_o eternal_a thing_n only_o 2._o all_o man_n of_o sound_a judgement_n say_v that_o they_o aspire_v after_o thing_n eternal_a while_o their_o thought_n labour_n and_o study_n be_v take_v up_o about_o what_o respect_v the_o earth_n and_o time_n be_v it_o possible_a that_o they_o can_v have_v such_o a_o blindness_n of_o spirit_n as_o to_o believe_v that_o they_o desire_v eternal_a thing_n when_o they_o despise_v they_o ●or_a ●e_n who_o seek_v after_o the_o good_n of_o this_o world_n give_v a_o sure_a evidence_n that_o he_o despise_v eternity_n since_o it_o give_v a_o full_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o man_n who_o desire_v it_o and_o he_o can_v no_o long_o desire_v any_o other_o thing_n for_o all_o that_o be_v temporal_a and_o transitory_a seem_v to_o he_o dung_n and_o filth_n of_o which_o he_o make_v use_v of_o the_o least_o ●e_n can_v and_o will_v flee_v in_o the_o air_n towards_o eternity_n without_o any_o wise_a touch_v the_o earth_n if_o his_o body_n be_v not_o of_o so_o 〈◊〉_d matter_n and_o oblige_v to_o take_v such_o gross_a food_n for_o its_o 〈◊〉_d but_o they_o who_o travel_n towards_o the_o world_n be_v still_o desirous_a of_o silver_n and_o gold_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o may_v make_v themselves_o to_o be_v serve_v and_o honour_v that_o they_o may_v take_v their_o delight_n in_o eat_v drink_v walk_v commodious_a apparel_n in_o adorn_v their_o house_n with_o fine_a movable_n and_o rich_a ornament_n that_o they_o may_v satisfy_v their_o five_o natural_a sense_n of_o sight_n hear_v smell_n taste_v and_o feel_v 3._o so_o that_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o a_o person_n who_o travel_v towards_o eternity_n find_v herself_o alone_o in_o the_o way_n since_o all_o the_o man_n that_o we_o see_v now_o do_v so_o desire_v and_o seek_v after_o all_o these_o thing_n study_v and_o labour_v with_o all_o their_o power_n to_o obtain_v they_o and_o they_o will_v not_o despise_v or_o forsake_v they_o for_o all_o the_o reason_n that_o can_v be_v tell_v they_o they_o will_v indeed_o have_v eternity_n without_o resolve_v to_o forsake_v temporal_a thing_n though_o jesus_n christ_n tell_v we_o that_o we_o can_v serve_v two_o master_n without_o be_v unfaithful_a to_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o they_o wrest_v this_o passage_n according_a to_o the_o sensuality_n of_o their_o inclination_n and_o they_o will_v needs_o follow_v they_o and_o have_v eternal_a life_n also_o which_o be_v impossible_a therefore_o i_o do_v not_o understand_v man_n now_o neither_o do_v they_o understand_v i_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n we_o can_v stay_v together_o 4._o i_o must_v indeed_o out_o of_o necessity_n be_v among_o man_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v possible_a for_o i_o i_o will_v leave_v they_o to_o follow_v the_o way_n that_o god_n point_v out_o to_o i_o and_o leave_v they_o to_o follow_v those_o way_n which_o they_o will_v needs_o choose_v for_o their_o damnation_n i_o will_v not_o say_v my_o dear_a child_n that_o you_o walk_v in_o this_o way_n of_o damnation_n since_o you_o have_v a_o effectual_a desire_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o accompany_v i_o but_o you_o be_v yet_o travel_v towards_o the_o world_n which_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o crucify_v in_o you_o you_o do_v not_o yet_o know_v how_o one_o must_v die_v to_o it_o in_o all_o thing_n i_o be_o therefore_o troublesome_a to_o you_o in_o resolve_v to_o walk_n alone_o and_o you_o give_v i_o more_o trouble_n to_o oblige_v i_o to_o follow_v you_o in_o travel_v towards_o the_o earth_n and_o temporal_a thing_n where_o i_o can_v accompany_v you_o without_o continual_a strife_n and_o debate_n for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o temporal_a action_n or_o word_n which_o be_v not_o blameworthy_a in_o this_o way_n that_o lead_v to_o eternity_n for_o i_o shall_v no_o soon_o hear_v you_o speak_v of_o thing_n which_o respect_v the_o earth_n only_o but_o i_o will_v reprove_v you_o for_o they_o as_o idle_a word_n and_o unprofitable_a for_o eternity_n and_o if_o by_o your_o action_n you_o shall_v labour_v for_o earthly_a thing_n i_o will_v complain_v of_o your_o employ_v and_o reckon_v your_o labour_n to_o be_v vain_a 5._o you_o see_v how_o i_o will_v be_v a_o burden_n to_o you_o and_o you_o will_v be_v insupportable_a to_o i_o and_o therefore_o our_o journey_n will_v be_v melancholy_a and_o troublesome_a both_o for_o you_o and_o i_o and_o worse_o than_o that_o of_o two_o person_n who_o do_v not_o understand_v one_o another_o by_o sign_n nor_o word_n nevertheless_o your_o company_n do_v not_o offend_v i_o for_o i_o love_v it_o because_o of_o the_o good_a desire_n which_o you_o have_v neither_o will_v i_o reprove_v you_o by_o way_n of_o correction_n or_o reproof_n but_o out_o of_o good_a inclination_n for_o your_o perfection_n which_o i_o love_v as_o my_o own_o but_o your_o nature_n will_v feel_v trouble_n thereby_o which_o perhaps_o will_v be_v insupportable_a to_o
you_o or_o will_v wrong_v your_o health_n 6._o for_o i_o yield_v in_o nothing_o to_o nature_n know_v well_o that_o it_o be_v corrupt_v and_o beget_v all_o sort_n of_o sin_n which_o kill_v the_o soul_n and_o make_v it_o lose_v a_o bless_a eternity_n of_o necessity_n we_o must_v contradict_v it_o and_o deny_v all_o its_o desire_n or_o otherwise_o it_o will_v lead_v we_o to_o all_o sort_n of_o eternal_a misery_n which_o few_o person_n do_v conceive_v for_o we_o see_v every_o one_o follow_v his_o own_o will_n without_o think_v that_o he_o do_v evil_a for_o they_o do_v not_o sufficient_o perceive_v that_o ourselves_o will_v bring_v forth_o eternal_a death_n as_o in_o truth_n it_o do_v which_o i_o see_v by_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n and_o jesus_n christ_n have_v also_o teach_v we_o it_o when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o who_o do_v not_o deny_v himself_o can_v be_v his_o disiple_n i_o can_v find_v more_o express_a term_n to_o make_v man_n understand_v that_o he_o must_v not_o follow_v his_o own_o will_n but_o absolute_o deny_v it_o all_o that_o it_o ask_v nevertheless_o we_o see_v that_o the_o best_a incline_v now_o adays_o think_v themselves_o happy_a that_o they_o can_v follow_v their_o own_o will_n which_o be_v always_o incline_v towards_o earthly_a and_o temporal_a thing_n and_o never_o towards_o eternity_n which_o be_v unto_o it_o invisible_a and_o incomprehensible_a 7._o for_o this_o cause_n i_o can_v never_o accompany_v one_o who_o travel_v towards_o the_o world_n and_o follow_v his_o own_o will_n i_o must_v still_o w●lk_v alone_o so_o long_o as_o i_o shall_v not_o find_v other_o be_v like_o a_o desolate_a widow_n who_o have_v no_o companion_n nor_o consolation_n in_o this_o world_n which_o be_v even_o very_o grievous_a to_o nature_n because_o it_o be_v always_o sociable_a and_o be_v please_v with_o the_o society_n of_o those_o like_a to_o it_o which_o i_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o meet_v with_o in_o this_o world_n have_v be_v always_o oblige_v to_o travel_v alone_o for_o i_o have_v find_v none_o to_o join_v myself_o unto_o though_o i_o have_v still_o seek_v after_o they_o and_o inform_v myself_o where_o be_v those_o soul_n which_o travel_v towards_o eternity_n without_o have_v hitherto_o discover_v any_o 8._o i_o have_v converse_v with_o the_o religious_a and_o devout_a person_n of_o our_o side_n and_o have_v find_v they_o all_o seek_v after_o earthly_a thing_n for_o if_o they_o study_v and_o preach_v it_o be_v to_o recommend_v themselves_o to_o man_n or_o to_o get_v their_o live_n and_o secular_a person_n who_o be_v engage_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o physic_n or_o in_o merchandize_v do_v all_o to_o gain_v money_n or_o to_o acquire_v honour_n and_o pleasure_n in_o this_o world_n so_o that_o none_o of_o those_o can_v accompany_v i_o in_o the_o way_n to_o eternity_n and_o therefore_o i_o must_v walk_v alone_o or_o turn_v backward_o to_o the_o way_n of_o the_o world_n which_o i_o will_v never_o do_v choose_v rather_o to_o die_v alone_o in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n than_o to_o follow_v a_o crowd_n in_o the_o way_n of_o perdition_n see_v the_o great_a number_n of_o the_o damn_a will_v never_o ease_v my_o pain_n but_o rather_o increase_v it_o by_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o number_n of_o damn_a soul_n therefore_o i_o will_v continue_v in_o the_o way_n to_o eternity_n though_o i_o shall_v travel_v alone_o in_o it_o even_o to_o death_n choose_v rather_o to_o be_v alone_o with_o jesus_n christ_n than_o in_o a_o great_a company_n with_o the_o world_n and_o hell_n i_o know_v indeed_o my_o dear_a child_n that_o you_o do_v not_o desire_v to_o follow_v the_o world_n or_o hell_n but_o in_o effect_v you_o still_o follow_v they_o so_o long_o as_o you_o yet_o seek_v any_o other_o thing_n than_o eternity_n you_o think_v you_o will_v not_o seek_v any_o other_o thing_n since_o you_o have_v resolve_v to_o quit_v the_o world_n but_o believe_v i_o so_o long_o as_o you_o yet_o seek_v to_o please_v man_n and_o that_o you_o be_v afraid_a to_o displease_v they_o you_o be_v still_o in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o world_n and_o so_o long_o as_o you_o take_v pleasure_n here_o in_o the_o honour_n or_o prosit_fw-la of_o the_o world_n you_o can_v relish_v the_o delight_n or_o the_o repose_n of_o eternity_n and_o if_o you_o have_v yet_o a_o esteem_n for_o wealth_n it_o be_v certain_a you_o be_v not_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o eternal_a good_a thing_n for_o these_o make_v one_o always_o to_o despse_v earthly_a good_n find_v they_o to_o be_v vain_a and_o unworthy_a of_o our_o love_n 9_o by_o which_o you_o may_v certain_o discern_v if_o you_o be_v in_o the_o way_n of_o eternity_n or_o in_o that_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o time_n according_a as_o your_o aim_n and_o design_n tend_v unto_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o this_o be_v a_o general_a rule_n for_o all_o man_n of_o the_o world_n by_o which_o they_o may_v measure_v if_o they_o be_v in_o the_o way_n to_o a_o bless_a eternity_n or_o in_o that_o which_o lead_v unto_o a_o miserable_a eternity_n by_o examine_v if_o their_o care_n desire_n and_o affection_n be_v towards_o earthly_a thing_n or_o indeed_o towards_o thing_n eternal_a 10._o not_o that_o one_o must_v live_v in_o idleness_n in_o this_o world_n for_o he_o ought_v continual_o to_o labour_n in_o it_o to_o accomplish_v the_o penitence_n that_o god_n have_v enjoin_v we_o but_o our_o labour_n ought_v to_o respect_v eternity_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n or_o that_o of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o all_o that_o be_v without_o this_o be_v evil._n for_o if_o one_o labour_n for_o this_o world_n he_o receive_v here_o the_o recompense_n of_o his_o labour_n and_o therefore_o he_o have_v no_o more_o to_o pretend_v to_o for_o eternity_n for_o otherwise_o god_n will_v not_o be_v just_a see_v he_o who_o have_v labour_v that_o he_o may_v gain_v money_n have_v gain_v it_o have_v receive_v the_o reward_n of_o his_o labour_n and_o have_v no_o right_a to_o pretend_v to_o any_o other_o thing_n for_o he_o desire_v no_o other_o thing_n if_o you_o labour_v that_o you_o may_v get_v a_o office_n and_o you_o obtain_v it_o your_o labour_n be_v well_o reward_v by_o the_o obtain_n of_o that_o office_n if_o you_o labour_v in_o traffic_n and_o business_n that_o you_o may_v gain_v money_n and_o if_o this_o succeed_v according_a to_o your_o desire_n you_o must_v not_o look_v for_o any_o other_o recompense_n but_o the_o money_n that_o you_o have_v gain_v if_o you_o study_v that_o you_o may_v accomplish_v yourself_o before_o man_n you_o be_v reward_v by_o the_o praise_n which_o they_o give_v you_o and_o the_o esteem_v they_o have_v for_o you_o you_o see_v all_o that_o a_o person_n can_v pretend_v to_o who_o labour_v for_o the_o earth_n and_o for_o time_n god_n can_v in_o justice_n give_v he_o a_o bless_a eternity_n when_o his_o labour_n have_v no_o other_o end_n but_o the_o earth_n towards_o which_o he_o travel_v all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n as_o we_o see_v all_o man_n do_v now_o and_o they_o think_v themselves_o wise_a and_o happy_a when_o they_o dextrous_o seek_v after_o their_o advantage_n in_o this_o world_n for_o he_o who_o do_v it_o not_o be_v despise_v by_o they_o and_o look_v upon_o as_o a_o fool._n 11._o this_o be_v the_o way_n in_o which_o all_o man_n do_v travel_n wherein_o it_o will_v be_v impossible_a for_o i_o to_o follow_v or_o imitate_v they_o for_o i_o look_v upon_o all_o these_o thing_n as_o folly_n and_o amusement_n of_o satan_n for_o what_o can_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n if_o he_o attain_v to_o some_o office_n or_o benefice_n or_o that_o he_o have_v heap_n up_o money_n that_o he_o may_v take_v his_o delight_n in_o this_o world_n death_n put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o and_o the_o praise_n of_o man_n which_o he_o have_v acquire_v by_o improve_n himself_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o blast_n of_o wind_n which_o drive_v away_o the_o ash_n of_o our_o corruption_n by_o forgetfulness_n out_o of_o their_o memory_n and_o the_o poor_a soul_n find_v itself_o deprive_v of_o eternal_a glory_n which_o it_o can_v never_o recover_v after_o this_o transitory_a life_n which_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o a_o bless_a or_o miserable_a eternity_n it_o be_v a_o folly_n and_o deceit_n to_o hope_v for_o it_o he_o must_v content_v himself_o with_o the_o earth_n which_o he_o love_v and_o with_o man_n who_o he_o desire_v to_o please_v 12._o behold_v my_o dear_a child_n what_o recompense_n the_o earth_n and_o man_n can_v give_v they_o for_o all_o the_o service_n which_o they_o shall_v render_v they_o nothing_o but_o the_o pain_n and_o sorrow_n of_o be_v force_v to_o abandon_v they_o and_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n for_o have_v seek_v after_o earthly_a thing_n and_o travel_v towards_o a_o
proposal_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o cambray_n xxiv_o pere_fw-fr du_fw-fr bois_n and_o s●me_v ma●●s_n esteem_v she_o xxv_o the_o jesuit_n distur●_n her_o xxvi_o the_o bishop_n grant_v her_o desire_n xxvii_o the_o clergy_n incense_v against_o she_o xxviii_o 〈◊〉_d bishop_n retract_v his_o permission_n xxix_o she_o wait_v on_o her_o mother_n at_o her_o death_n keep_v her_o father_n house_n he_o marry_v and_o she_o retire_v xxx_o life_n in_o great_a solitude_n at_o st._n andrew_n xxxi_o i_o disturb_v by_o a_o insolent_a youth_n xxxii_o be_v force_v from_o thence_o by_o the_o war._n xxxiii_o do_v the_o last_o office_n to_o her_o father_n and_o succeed_v to_o her_o mother_n good_n xxxiv_o nothing_o in_o this_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man._n xxxv_o st._n saulieu_n accost_v she_o xxxvi_o she_o undertake_v the_o care_n of_o a_o hospital_n of_o orphan_n xxxvii_o her_o frequent_a sickness_n there_o xxxviii_o st._n saulieu_n persecution_n of_o she_o thirty-nine_o her_o delivery_n from_o he_o and_o his_o end_n xl._o she_o turn_v her_o house_n into_o a_o cloister_n xli_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o child_n sorcery_n xlii_o their_o declaration_n xliii_o no_o ground_n to_o disbelieve_v this_o story_n or_o that_o the_o world_n swarm_v with_o such_o xliv_o the_o parent_n accuse_v she_o to_o the_o magistrate_n xlv_o 〈…〉_z xlvi_o malefice_n to_o take_v a_o way_n her_o life_n xlvii_o she_o withdraws_z to_z gaunt_z and_o mechlin_n xlviii_o be_v esteem_v by_o learned_a and_o good_a man_n there_o xlix_o particular_o by_o m._n de_fw-fr cort_n l._n go_v to_o holland_n li._n ●_o sick_a at_o amderdam_n and_o be_v visit_v by_o person_n of_o all_o persuasion_n tomb._n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr faux_fw-fr theol._n part_n 2._o letter_n 1._o lii_o write_v here_o some_o of_o her_o book_n liii_o mr._n de_fw-fr cort_n cast_v into_o a_o dun_a geon_n by_o the_o jansenist_n liv._o her_o concern_v for_o he_o and_o his_o deliverance_n lv._o they_o pe●●n_v he_o in_o holstein_n lvi_o her_o long_a sickness_n lvii_o m._n de_fw-fr cort_n have_v leave_v she_o his_o right_n to_o noordstrand_n lviii_o they_o persecute_v she_o therefore_o lix_n she_o go_v to_o holstein_n lx._n the_o quaker_n write_v and_o she_o answer_v lxi_o some_o anabaptist_n of_o friesland_n come_v to_o she_o lxii_o their_o behaviour_n lxiii_o the_o occasion_n of_o a_o new_a persecution_n lxiv_o the_o pastor_n of_o holstein_n be_v alarm_v lxv_o she_o be_v persecute_v at_o flensbourg_n lxvi_o at_o husum_n and_o rob_v of_o her_o print_n press_v book_n and_o pap●rs_n lxvii_o general-major_a vanderwyck_n appear_v for_o she_o lxviii_o the_o pastor_n write_v against_o she_o lxix_o she_o live_v in_o great_a secrecy_n and_o hazard_n at_o sleswick_n the_o people_n be_v inflame_v by_o the_o pastor_n lxx_o the_o scatter_v the_o sheet_n of_o her_o book_n discover_v the_o calumny_n of_o the_o pastor_n lxxi_o the_o court_n give_v her_o protection_n lxxii_o she_o give_v in_o a_o confession_n of_o her_o faith_n lxxiii_o the_o church_n man_n prevail_v lxxiv_o she_o go_v to_o hambourg_n lxxv_o her_o exercise_n and_o write_n there_o lxxvi_o she_o be_v persecute_v by_o the_o pastor_n there_o lxxvii_o go_v to_o lutzburg_n in_o friesland_n lxxviii_o her_o employment_n and_o write_n there_o lxxix_o long_o sickness_n lxxx_o persecute_v anew_o by_o her_o servant_n sorcerer_n lxxxi_o by_o those_o who_o pretend_v to_o protect_v she_o lxxxii_o the_o pretence_n for_o it_o and_o the_o true_a cause_n lxxxiii_o go_v to_o franeker_n lxxxiv_o her_o death_n lxxxv_o her_o character_n matth._n 26._o 48._o 73._o temoign_n de_fw-fr vertie_n part_v 1._o p._n 146._o tomb._n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr faux_fw-fr theol._n part_n 3_o letter_n 1._o nu_fw-la 17_o 18._o avis_n salut_fw-fr let_v 133._o i._o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o letter_n ii_o necessary_a qualification_n in_o writer_n of_o narrative_n und_fw-ge character_n iii_o these_o want_v in_o the_o author_n of_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o snake_n in_o the_o grass_n and_o bourignanism_n detect_v iv._o the_o first_o author_n rash_a and_o spiteful_a charge_n against_o a._n b._n v._o a._n b._n vindicated_n from_o the_o 1_o of_o blasphemous_a pri●●_n parole_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr p._n 127._o temoig_n de_fw-fr verity_n part_n 2._o p._n 47._o ibid._n p._n 59_o 60._o i●id_fw-la p._n 81_o ●●_o vi_o from_o the_o 2._o that_o she_o overturn_v priesthood_n etc._n etc._n etc._n s●_n be_v 1._o vii_o from_o the_o 3_o of_o uncharitableness_n etc._n etc._n etc._n p._n 63_o 161_o etc._n etc._n gen._n 6_o 12._o ps_n 14._o 3._o mic._n 7._o 2._o 2._o light_n of_o the_o world_n part_v 1._o p._n 47._o 47._o ●emo_fw-la ig●_fw-la de_fw-la ve●i●e_fw-la part_v 2._o p._n 71._o viii_o from_o the_o 4_o of_o 〈…〉_z the_o design_n 〈…〉_z ix_o from_o the_o 5_o of_o her_o deny_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n christ_n p_o 86_o 87_o etc._n etc._n etc._n see_v apology_n p._n 59_o etc._n etc._n light_n of_o the_o world_n p._n 139._o light_n of_o the_o world_n p._n 142._o x._o from_o the_o 6_o of_o her_o contempt_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n scripture_n p._n 159_o etc._n etc._n xi_o from_o the_o 7_o of_o her_o wild_a and_o barbarous_a notion_n notion_n see_v the_o apology_n p._n 72._o etc._n etc._n etc._n ibid._n p._n 180._o etc._n etc._n xii_o the_o undiscreet_a treatment_n of_o m._n poiret_n pag._n 127_o etc._n etc._n xiii_o the_o fury_n of_o his_o zeal_n wrong_v level_v fourteen_o the_o doctor_n the_o author_n of_o the_o narrative_n the_o occasion_n of_o all_o this_o noise●_n xv._n great_a caution_n to_o be_v use_v in_o judge_v of_o spiritual_a thing_n xvi_o the_o falseness_n of_o the_o charge_n of_o a_o sect._n xvii_o his_o uacharitableness_n to_o his_o countryman_n xviii_o in_o both_o the_o narratives_n he_o fight_v with_o his_o own_o shadow_n xix_o his_o disin_n genuity_n in_o his_o narration_n xx._n appear_v in_o his_o unjust_a way_n of_o form_v her_o character_n 1._o by_o piece_v together_o half_a sentiment_n from_o different_a place_n 2._o by_o borrow_v piece_n of_o it_o from_o her_o avow_v enemy_n enemy_n nar._n 1._o p._n 75._o 3._o by_o obtrude_a false_a translation_n rev._n 4._o 14_o 4._o by_o affirm_v thing_n as_o say_v of_o she_o without_o give_v evidence_n evidence_n preface_n §._o 2._o 2._o p._n 3._o §._o 3._o p._n 5._o §._o 4._o 5._o by_o draw_v consequence_n contrary_a to_o their_o principle_n which_o their_o say_n do_v not_o infer_v and_o they_o express_o disclaim_v nar._n 1._o p._n 18._o §._o 10._o etc._n etc._n la_fw-fr paix_fw-fr de_fw-fr bonnes_fw-fr ames_o p._n 186_o &c_n &c_n xxi_o the_o dr_n great_a mistake_v as_o to_o the_o regard_v require_v to_o the_o testimony_n of_o men._n see_v apology_n p._n 14._o etc._n etc._n xxii_o the_o true_a reason_n why_o a._n b._n be_v high_o esteem_v not_o adduce_v by_o the_o doctor_n nor_o those_o adduce_v sufficient_o disprove_v as_o 1._o her_o sanctity_n sanctity_n see_v apology_n p._n 137._o the_o doctor_n not_o faithful_a in_o relate_v the_o proof_n of_o her_o sanctity_n sanctity_n see_v apology_n p._n 42_o 43._o xxiii_o his_o reason_n against_o her_o sanctity_n disprove_v and_o she_o vindicate_v from_o 1._o that_o of_o a_o light_n and_o vain_a conversation_n 2._o from_o follow_v she_o own_o humour_n without_o any_o regard_n to_o the_o principle_n of_o religion_n 3._o from_o her_o disobedience_n to●her_o parent_n 4._o from_o covetousness_n because_o of_o her_o law_n suit_v suit_v vie_v ext_a ●_o 49._o 49._o 〈…〉_z 〈…〉_z ibid._n n._n 57_o 57_o vi●_n ext_a n._n 52_o 54._o 54._o ib._n n._n 5_o 49_o 51._o 51._o ib._n p._n 180._o 180._o ib._n and_o part_n de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr n._n 9_o p._n 163._o 163._o parole_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr p._n 67._o 67._o vie_v ext_a p._n 186._o 186._o au●s_n salut_n p._n 86._o 86._o vie_v continuè●_n cap._n 12._o p._n 128_o 129._o temoign_n de_fw-fr verity_n part_v 2._o p_o 3●2_n 303_o 303_o avertis_fw-la contre_fw-fr les_fw-fr tremb_v p_o 213_o etc._n etc._n xxiv_o 〈…〉_z etc._n etc._n xxv_o 2._o her_o knowledge_n of_o secret_a thought_n not_o disprove_v xxvi_o 3._o her_o foretell_v thing_n to_o co●e_n not_o disprove_v disprove_v apology_n p._n 230._o etc._n etc._n xxvii_o 4._o the_o supernatural_a mean_n of_o her_o knowledge_n not_o disprove_v xxviii_o 〈…〉_z c._n 3●_n n._n 5_o 6_o 〈…〉_z xxix_o just_a remark_n upon_o what_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d narra_fw-la 1._o p._n 75._o ibid._n p_o 76._o xxx_o some_o remark_n upon_o the_o second_o narrative_n 1._o he_o persist_v in_o his_o false_a representation_n 2._o in_o his_o curtailing_n and_o glossing_n nar._n 2._o p_o 4._o light_n of_o the_o world_n part_n 2._o p._n 84._o light_n of_o the_o world_n part_v 1._o p._n 92._o nar._n 2._o p._n 5._o light_n of_o the_o world_n part_v ●_o p._n 39_o 3._o make_v question_n upon_o a_o false_a supposition_n 4._o he_o oppose_v the_o truth_n and_o join_v with_o the_o pelagian_n light_n of_o the_o world_n part_v 2._o conf._n 13._o p._n 85._o 85._o 1_o cor._n 6_o 17._o d._n c._n nar._n p._n 36_o 37._o 5._o a_o just_a character_n of_o m_o poiret_n and_o the_o narrator_n unchristian_a deal_n with_o he_o consider_v tem._n des_fw-fr s._n ecrit_fw-fr p._n 387_o 388._o ibid._n p._n 402_o 4●3_n d._n c's_o essay_n part_v 2._o pag._n 163_o 164_o 165._o 6_o the_o narrator_n mistake_v as_o to_o the_o comparison_n betwixt_o jes_n christ_n first_o birth_n and_o the_o renovation_n of_o his_o gospel_n spirit_n 7_o his_o rash_a censure_n of_o thing_n he_o do_v not_o understand_v narr_n 2._o p._n 49._o 8._o he_o 〈…〉_z 〈…〉_z i._o the_o occasion_n and_o design_n of_o the_o letter_n ii_o remark_n upon_o doctor_n cock_n bourn'_v letter_n to_o his_o friend_n 1._o h._n judge_v other_o condemn_v himself_o himself_o letter_n p._n 2._o 2._o unjust_a 〈…〉_z and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pag._n 9_o c._n ●_o pag._n ●●_o 3._o the_o doctor_n in_o danger_n by_o become_a h●s_n own_o interpreter_n interpreter_n pag._n 30._o 4._o not_o just_a in_o make_v of_o character_n 5._o make_v a_o controversy_n where_o there_o be_v none_o a._n b_n write_n valuable_a for_o their_o plainness_n simplicity_n and_o disinterestedness_n 7._o the_o doctor_n be_v prenciple_n not_o friendly_a to_o st._n paul_n etoile_n du_fw-fr matin_fw-fr p._n 23._o 8._o his_o rudeness_n to_o a._n b_n friend_n 9_o his_o rudeness_n to_o the_o philadelphian_a iii_o remark_n upon_o the_o second_o narrative_n 1._o a._n b_n pretence_n to_o sanctity_n not_o so_o high_a at_o he_o describe_v they_o for_o she_o do_v not_o exalt_v herself_o above_o the_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n she_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o be_v without_o sin_n or_o corruption_n solid_a virtue_n part_n 2._o p._n 71._o she_o own_v her_o fail_n fail_n 1_o narrat_fw-la p._n 49._o in_o that_o very_a passage_n cite_v by_o the_o author_n vie_v ext_a p._n 150._o 150._o pag._n 6._o he_o most_o injurious_o mistake_v and_o translate_v some_o of_o a._n b_n word_n put_v malicious_a gloss_n upon_o other_o other_o tomb._n dela_n faus_n theol._n part_n 2._o let_v 14._o p._n 115._o ibid._n ibid._n pag._n 7._o pag._n 2._o 2._o a._n b._n ●as_o make_v no_o addition_n to_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n christianity_n a_o nar._n p._n 11._o 3._o her_o expression_n about_o moses_n chair_n no_o mark_n of_o pride_n pride_n 2_o nar._n p._n 11._o pierre_n d●_n touche_n p._n 286._o 4_o her_o pretence_n to_o knowledge_n not_o such_o as_o he_o describe_v they_o 2_o nar._n p._n 15._o 5._o that_o she_o require_v the_o same_o respect_n to_o her_o say_n as_o to_o the_o scripture_n be_v false_a 2_o nar._n p._n 20_o 22._o 22._o lum_n en_fw-fr ten_o part_n i._n pag._n 2._o 6._o the_o doctor_n draw_v unjust_a and_o invidicus_n consiquence_n 1._o instance_n instance_n light_n of_o the_o world_n part_v 2._o p._n 85._o matt._n 5._o 14._o 1._o tim._n 4._o 16._o 16._o pag._n 32._o second_o instance_n instance_n light_n of_o the_o world_n part_v 2._o conf._n 17._o p._n 128_o 129_o 7._o the_o doctor_n be_v ignorance_n of_o a._n b.'s_n princ●ples_n appear_v 2._o nar._n p._n 33._o n._n 7._o iv._o a_o 〈◊〉_d suru●r_n of_o the_o doctor_n be_v whole_a performance_n with_o reflection_n on_o his_o undisercet_a zeal_n 2_o nar._n p_o 55._o lette●_n p._n 21._o v._o 5._o the_o writer_n apologize_v for_o himself_o i._o god_n alone_o lovely_a motive_n to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n 1._o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n and_o accomplishment_n of_o all_o good_n ii_o 2._o the_o soul_n likeness_n to_o he_o iii_o 3._o of_o the_o benefit_n bestow_v by_o he_o upon_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n iv._o 4._o the_o provision_n he_o have_v make_v both_o for_o soul_n and_o body_n v._o 5._o his_o mercy_n to_o become_v the_o saviour_n of_o man._n vi_o 6._o his_o inacrnation_n vii_o 7._o his_o annihilation_n viii_o 8._o his_o become_v a_o teacher_n and_o prophet_n ix_o 9_o his_o become_v a_o priest_n x._o 10._o that_o he_o give_v his_o life_n even_o for_o his_o enemy_n xi_o 11._o the_o advantage_n of_o divine_a love_n xii_o 12._o the_o vanity_n of_o the_o earthly_a love_n of_o riches_n honour_n pleasure_n xiii_o 13._o nothing_o lovely_a but_o god_n 14._o without_o he_o all_o be_v folly_n and_o misery_n
thing_n and_o entire_o resign_v unto_o he_o it_o be_v not_o for_o those_o scesser_n then_o that_o i_o have_v write_v this_o abridgement_n but_o for_o those_o who_o desire_v in_o the_o simplicity_n of_o their_o heart_n to_o be_v help_v on_o in_o the_o way_n to_o eternal_a life_n jesus_n ch●ist_n be_v the_o way_n and_o we_o be_v make_v believe_v that_o his_o life_n be_v unimitable_a the_o first_o christian_n follow_v he_o in_o a_o life_n of_o poverty_n reproach_n and_o pain_n in_o which_o now_o we_o think_v he_o neither_o can_v nor_o aught_o to_o be_v follow_v here_o be_v a_o instance_n of_o be_v in_o this_o last_o age_n of_o the_o world_n who_o as_o she_o declare_v to_o all_o that_o 〈◊〉_d be_v no_o salvation_n without_o follow_v the_o example_n a●●_n 〈◊〉_d of_o jesus_n christ_n so_o she_o make_v he_o her_o constant_a pattern_n and_o this_o her_o great_a work_n from_o the_o eighteen_o year_n of_o her_o age_n to_o her_o death_n and_o thereby_o encourage_v and_o invite_v 〈◊〉_d all_o to_o deny_v ourselves_o and_o take_v up_o our_o cross_n and_o follow_v he_o give_v she_o then_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o her_o hand_n and_o let_v she_o own_o work_n praise_v she_o in_o the_o gate_n a_o apology_n for_o m._n ant._n bourignon_n part_n iv._o contain_v a_o abridgement_n of_o her_o life_n to_o which_o be_v add_v two_o letter_n concern_v the_o preface_n to_o the_o snake_n in_o the_o grass_n and_o bourignianism_n detect_v by_o different_a hand_n i._o parentage_n mrs._n antonia_n bourignon_n be_v bear_v in_o the_o town_n of_o lisle_n in_o flanders_n the_o 13_o of_o january_n 1616._o baptize_v in_o the_o parish_n of_o st._n maurice_n and_o name_v antonia_n her_o father_n be_v john_n bourignon_n a_o italian_a by_o nation_n and_o her_o mother_n margaret_n becquart_n bear_v near_o to_o lisle_n they_o live_v in_o a_o marry_a state_n thirty_o one_o year_n have_v four_o daughter_n of_o which_o antonia_n be_v the_o three_o and_o one_o son_n all_o of_o which_o die_v in_o their_o childhood_n except_o the_o elder_a daughter_n who_o live_v till_o the_o thirty_o six_o year_n of_o her_o age_n and_o be_v twice_o marry_v she_o die_v anno_fw-la 1647._o her_o mother_n in_o july_n 1641._o her_o father_n marry_v again_o in_o october_n be_v more_o than_o sixty_o year_n old_a and_o die_v april_n 1648._o and_o antonia_n remain_v the_o only_a heiress_n of_o her_o mother_n her_o sister_n have_v die_v without_o child_n ii_o why_o when_o she_o come_v into_o the_o world_n her_o mother_n think_v she_o have_v bear_v a_o monster_n because_o her_o whole_a forehead_n be_v cover_v with_o black_a hair_n even_o to_o her_o eye_n and_o her_o upper_a lip_n be_v fasten_v to_o her_o nose_n and_o so_o her_o mouth_n stand_v open_a they_o conceal_v she_o for_o some_o month_n and_o the_o hair_n fall_v off_o of_o itself_o and_o the_o lip_n be_v untie_v by_o a_o surgeon_n and_o she_o increase_v in_o comeliness_n yet_o her_o mother_n can_v not_o forget_v the_o aversion_n she_o have_v conceive_v and_o can_v not_o love_v she_o as_o she_o do_v she_o other_o child_n but_o slight_v she_o from_o her_o infancy_n and_o can_v hardly_o look_v upon_o she_o the_o other_o child_n also_o treat_v she_o rude_o without_o her_o father_n knowledge_n who_o then_o love_v her_o best_a of_o all_o his_o child_n but_o his_o affair_n keep_v he_o still_o abroad_o except_o at_o meal_n iii_o childhood_n this_o rough_a treatment_n make_v she_o retire_v from_o childish_a play_n and_o be_v much_o alone_a god_n then_o draw_v she_o powerful_o to_o himself_o as_o soon_o as_o she_o have_v any_o use_n of_o reason_n all_o her_o thought_n be_v serious_a and_o her_o reason_n seem_v not_o to_o proceed_v from_o a_o child_n and_o have_v be_v instruct_v by_o her_o parent_n when_o about_o four_o year_n of_o age_n of_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o christianity_n and_o of_o all_o that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v do_v and_o suffer_v for_o man_n she_o be_v desirous_a to_o be_v inform_v in_o what_o country_n the_o christian_n live_v and_o profess_v a_o great_a desire_n to_o go_v thither_o and_o when_o her_o parent_n mock_v she_o and_o tell_v h●●_n she_o be_v in_o the_o country_n of_o christian_n she_o say_v that_o can_v not_o be_v for_o jesus_n christ_n be_v bear_v in_o a_o stable_a and_o live_v in_o poverty_n whereas_o they_o all_o love_n to_o have_v fine_a house_n and_o fine_a furniture_n and_o much_o wealth_n and_o therefore_o she_o conclude_v they_o be_v not_o christian_n and_o that_o she_o will_v go_v into_o the_o country_n where_o the_o christian_n do_v live_v but_o no_o body_n understand_v this_o language_n but_o turn_v it_o into_o raillery_n and_o so_o she_o be_v constrain_v to_o hold_v her_o peace_n iv._o god_n find_v so_o little_a satisfaction_n in_o the_o world_n she_o turn_v herself_o unto_o god_n by_o prayer_n and_o he_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o be_v find_v of_o they_o that_o seek_v he_o with_o their_o whole_a heart_n especial_o little_a child_n she_o from_o her_o infancy_n have_v daily_a conversation_n with_o god_n he_o speak_v inward_o to_o her_o heart_n and_o she_o think_v this_o divine_a conversation_n be_v a_o thing_n common_a to_o all_o then_o every_o thing_n serve_v she_o for_o a_o occasion_n to_o address_v to_o god_n thus_o for_o instance_n remark_v that_o her_o father_n be_v surly_a to_o her_o mother_n and_o ofttimes_o transport_v with_o anger_n against_o she_o after_o have_v endeavour_v to_o appease_v he_o by_o her_o childish_a embrace_n she_o will_v retire_v apart_o and_o consider_v how_o hard_o a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o be_v marry_v to_o a_o troublesome_a husband_n will_v say_v to_o god_n my_o god_n my_o god_n grant_v i_o may_v never_o marry_v and_o she_o beg_v that_o instead_o of_o be_v marry_v he_o will_v give_v she_o the_o grace_n to_o become_v his_o spouse_n her_o prayer_n be_v so_o well-pleasing_a to_o god_n that_o he_o grant_v she_o the_o full_a accomplishment_n of_o it_o give_v she_o from_o her_o infancy_n the_o gift_n of_o chastity_n and_o continence_n in_o so_o perfect_a a_o manner_n that_o she_o often_o say_v she_o never_o have_v in_o all_o her_o life_n even_o by_o temptation_n or_o surprise_n the_o least_o thought_n unworthy_a of_o the_o chastity_n and_o purity_n of_o the_o virgin_n state_n v._o world_n her_o sister_n be_v much_o addict_v to_o the_o vanity_n of_o the_o world_n and_o can_v not_o look_v upon_o her_o retiredness_n and_o aversion_n from_o they_o without_o indignation_n and_o displeasure_n and_o among_o her_o companion_n she_o make_v all_o this_o pass_n for_o a_o effect_n of_o stupidity_n and_o dulness_n this_o make_v she_o quit_v her_o first_o simplicity_n to_o follow_v for_o some_o time_n the_o vanity_n of_o the_o world_n not_o that_o her_o heart_n be_v set_v upon_o they_o but_o to_o show_v that_o she_o have_v enough_o of_o spirit_n and_o be_v not_o a_o fool_n as_o her_o sister_n will_v make_v they_o believe_v thus_o the_o devil_n lay_v snare_n for_o she_o to_o entrap_v she_o and_o the_o sweetness_n of_o her_o humour_n gain_v she_o the_o love_n of_o the_o young_a people_n they_o converse_v with_o beyond_o her_o sister_n thus_o she_o continue_v to_o dress_v to_o frequent_v their_o company_n to_o recreate_v herself_o with_o they_o in_o their_o play_n dance_n and_o other_o youthful_a divertisement_n though_o in_o all_o honesty_n if_o that_o may_v be_v call_v honesty_n which_o turn_v away_o the_o heart_n from_o god_n however_o it_o past_a for_o such_o in_o the_o world_n thus_o she_o great_o please_v her_o parent_n particular_o her_o father_n who_o deny_v she_o nothing_o whereby_o she_o may_v appear_v with_o advantage_n in_o the_o world_n her_o parent_n be_v anxious_a to_o have_v she_o marry_v be_v rich_a and_o have_v but_o two_o daughter_n and_o many_o young_a man_n will_v have_v have_v she_o for_o their_o wife_n but_o she_o can_v never_o resolve_v to_o marry_v have_v a_o aversion_n to_o it_o yet_o she_o take_v pleasure_n in_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o youth_n till_o they_o urge_v she_o to_o marry_v and_o then_o she_o withdraw_v from_o they_o and_o will_v discourse_v with_o they_o no_o more_o she_o begin_v also_o to_o take_v pleasure_n in_o the_o praise_n and_o esteem_v of_o man_n because_o they_o say_v she_o be_v fair_a and_o lovely_a whereas_o her_o mother_n have_v still_o call_v her_o ugly_a and_o despise_v she_o on_o all_o occasion_n vi_o she_o but_o as_o the_o world_n take_v place_n in_o her_o soul_n god_n withdraw_v from_o it_o by_o degree_n so_o that_o she_o feel_v no_o long_o that_o devotion_n or_o pleasure_n in_o prayer_n or_o solitude_n which_o former_o give_v she_o so_o much_o contentment_n this_o make_v her_o melancholy_n and_o the_o more_o she_o endeavour_v to_o divert_v it_o by_o company_n the_o more_o it_o increase_v for_o her_o soul_n be_v never_o at_o rest_n
their_o purity_n notwithstanding_o their_o contradiction_n to_o man_n life_n in_o who_o hand_n they_o be_v to_o be_v a_o stand_a miracle_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v the_o last_o and_o most_o perfect_a doctrine_n that_o be_v to_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o the_o standard_n by_o which_o all_o other_o be_v to_o be_v examine_v and_o try_v and_o desire_v no_o body_n may_v receive_v her_o sentiment_n but_o in_o so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v agreeable_a thereunto_o and_o condemn_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o withhold_a the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n from_o the_o people_n as_o a_o heinous_a injustice_n and_o impiety_n though_o she_o do_v not_o think_v that_o god_n have_v bind_v up_o himself_o only_o to_o this_o way_n of_o communicate_v his_o light_n but_o may_v when_o he_o please_v immediate_o communicate_v the_o same_o to_o any_o person_n without_o the_o use_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o such_o person_n may_v forbear_v the_o read_n of_o they_o as_o she_o do_v without_o despise_v they_o as_o one_o need_v not_o be_v take_v up_o with_o read_v his_o friend_n letter_n when_o he_o be_v immediate_o converse_v with_o he_o and_o for_o a_o evidence_n of_o it_o she_o appeal_v to_o the_o truth_n which_o she_o declare_v be_v communicate_v to_o she_o by_o god_n if_o they_o be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o substance_n with_o those_o contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n xi_o notion_n the_o author_n come_v next_o to_o some_o of_o her_o opinion_n which_o she_o herself_o have_v often_o declare_v be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o which_o if_o men_n please_v they_o may_v count_v they_o dream_n and_o fancy_n he_o call_v they_o wild_a and_o barbarous_a and_o indeed_o as_o he_o conceive_v and_o represent_v they_o he_o will_v make_v some_o of_o they_o appear_v extravagant_a enough_o though_o a_o candid_a interpretation_n of_o they_o will_v render_v they_o both_o amiable_a and_o useful_a thus_o what_o wildness_n or_o barbarity_n be_v there_o in_o assert_v that_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o church_n be_v one_o that_o it_o be_v his_o spirit_n internal_o animate_v influence_v and_o inform_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n that_o make_v they_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n or_o in_o assert_v that_o the_o last_o judgement_n by_o which_o she_o mean_v the_o universal_a plague_n by_o which_o god_n will_v in_o a_o course_n of_o many_o year_n destroy_v the_o wicked_a from_o off_o the_o earth_n be_v at_o hand_n etc._n few_o who_o serious_o consider_v the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n will_v think_v this_o a_o wild_a and_o barbarous_a notion_n but_o the_o scoffer_n who_o walk_v after_o their_o own_o lust_n and_o say_v where_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n she_o maintain_v no_o mahometan_a paradise_n etc._n but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o man_n will_v have_v enjoy_v in_o the_o state_n of_o innocence_n when_o as_o yet_o he_o have_v no_o lust_n or_o concupiscence_n unto_o the_o pure_a all_o thing_n be_v pure_a but_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v defile_v and_o unbelieving_a be_v nothing_o pure_a but_o even_o their_o mind_n and_o conscience_n be_v defile_v she_o say_v with_o our_o saviour_n that_o the_o saint_n after_o the_o resurrection_n neither_o marry_v nor_o be_v give_v in_o marriage_n but_o be_v as_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n she_o condemn_v human_a learning_n no_o far_o than_o it_o foster_v pride_n amusement_n self-conceit_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o eye_n or_o curiosity_n and_o destroy_v charity_n and_o the_o love_n of_o god_n there_o be_v no_o great_a absurdity_n in_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n think_v fit_a to_o appear_v in_o our_o human_a nature_n void_a of_o human_a learning_n no_o mathematician_n no_o philosopher_n nor_o critic_n than_o to_o say_v that_o he_o appear_v poor_a and_o despise_v of_o all_o not_o have_v where_o to_o lay_v his_o head_n since_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o deny_v himself_o of_o all_o that_o we_o make_v the_o object_n of_o our_o vanity_n and_o concupiscence_n xii_o poiret_n what_o the_o author_n be_v please_v to_o say_v of_o m._n poiret_n that_o he_o be_v craze_v and_o be_v still_o so_o repute_v be_v utter_o false_a can_v do_v he_o no_o hurt_v with_o such_o as_o be_v either_o acquaint_v with_o himself_o or_o his_o write_n but_o it_o show_v that_o man_n passion_n will_v make_v they_o rash_o utter_v false_a and_o extravagant_a thing_n which_o they_o themselves_o do_v not_o believe_v for_o the_o author_n himself_o in_o the_o next_o page_n reckon_v he_o among_o the_o man_n of_o sense_n and_o learning_n who_o have_v write_v in_o defence_n of_o a._n b._n abroad_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n then_o that_o some_o in_o britain_n admire_v his_o book_n for_o he_o be_v no_o superficial_a ramble_a writer_n as_o they_o discover_v more_o than_o a_o ordinary_a degree_n of_o sense_n and_o learning_n so_o they_o direct_v to_o the_o solid_a knowledge_n and_o practice_n of_o true_a christianity_n free_a from_o the_o false_a gloss_n of_o party_n and_o the_o disguise_n of_o self-love_n and_o corrupt_a nature_n the_o charge_n of_o his_o deny_v the_o divine_a prescience_n be_v clear_v in_o the_o apology_n *_o etc._n they_o do_v also_o endeavour_v to_o make_v he_o odious_a by_o publish_v a_o expression_n which_o they_o say_v he_o use_v in_o a_o private_a conversation_n with_o two_o gentleman_n of_o their_o acquaintance_n m._n poiret_n himself_o say_v it_o be_v not_o easy_a for_o he_o to_o remember_v the_o conversation_n he_o have_v with_o all_o who_o come_v to_o see_v he_o nor_o if_o he_o have_v such_o a_o expression_n to_o any_o but_o that_o if_o he_o have_v those_o gentleman_n may_v think_v he_o have_v reason_n for_o what_o he_o speak_v and_o he_o be_v well_o please_v that_o all_o the_o world_n know_v it_o that_o as_o he_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o god_n be_v so_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o a._n b._n be_v illuminate_v and_o inspire_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n both_o these_o be_v truth_n but_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o he_o look_v upon_o both_o as_o of_o equal_a moment_n or_o that_o he_o believe_v they_o upon_o equal_a ground_n xiii_o level_v after_o the_o author_n have_v form_v so_o grievous_a and_o unjust_a a_o charge_n lay_v aside_o a_o christian_a temper_n he_o proceed_v in_o his_o 8._o sect._n to_o sound_v the_o trumpet_n and_o excite_v other_o to_o fury_n and_o indignation_n and_o in_o his_o late_a book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o sin_n and_o heresy_n p._n 33._o he_o repeat_v over_o the_o same_o charge_n with_o all_o the_o hard_a word_n that_o spite_n and_o fury_n can_v invent_v and_o insinuate_v his_o fear_n of_o a_o grow_v sect_n and_o party_n it_o be_v strange_a to_o see_v man_n more_o alarm_v and_o enrage_v against_o enemy_n create_v by_o their_o own_o fancy_n than_o they_o be_v against_o real_a one_o if_o the_o author_n of_o the_o preface_n be_v once_o out_o of_o the_o heat_n that_o his_o imagination_n have_v put_v he_o in_o it_o be_v easy_a i_o shall_v think_v to_o convince_v he_o that_o these_o he_o call_v bourignianists_n be_v no_o such_o enemy_n as_o he_o have_v fancy_v to_o himself_o i_o can_v assure_v he_o they_o do_v hearty_o own_o that_o our_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n be_v obtain_v only_o by_o the_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o standard_n by_o which_o we_o be_v to_o try_v and_o examine_v all_o doctrine_n that_o no_o inspiration_n can_v come_v from_o god_n that_o do_v not_o fill_v the_o soul_n with_o humility_n and_o charity_n or_o that_o instill_v under_o the_o sheep_n clothing_n of_o devotion_n and_o piety_n any_o heresy_n or_o any_o thing_n that_o tend_v to_o schism_n or_o to_o withdraw_v obedience_n from_o their_o lawful_a bishop_n or_o to_o set_v up_o new_a sect_n and_o that_o corruption_n in_o the_o church_n be_v better_o amend_v by_o live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o and_o there_o by_o good_a example_n to_o reclaim_v than_o by_o open_a desertion_n to_o set_v up_o opposite_a faction_n which_o heighten_v animosity_n embitter_n spirit_n render_v they_o deaf_a to_o one_o another_o advice_n and_o often_o proceed_v to_o blood_n and_o slaughter_n as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o preface_n do_v so_o rational_o conclude_v it_o in_o the_o mark_v he_o give_v to_o distinguish_v between_o inspiration_n from_o god_n and_o diabolical_a enthusiasm_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o write_n of_o a._n b._n contrary_a to_o these_o or_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o do_v open_o disow_v and_o disclaim_v the_o same_o and_o stand_v up_o for_o they_o no_o far_o than_o they_o tend_v to_o promote_v the_o great_a interest_n of_o christianity_n truth_n holiness_n and_o peace_n fourteen_o noise●_n i_o come_v now_o to_o